CONTENTS
Introduction
Part One: Introduction to Coffee
Arabica and Robusta
The Coffee Tree
The Coffee Fruit
Coffee Varieties
Harvesting Coffee
Processing
How Coffee is Traded
A Short History of Coffee Drinking
Part Two: From Bean to Cup
Coffee Roasting
Buying and Storing Coffee
Tasting and Describing Coffee
Grinding Coffee
Water for Brewing
Brewing Basics
Espresso
Home Roasting
Part Three: Coffee Origins
AFRICA
Burundi
Democratic Republic of the Congo
Ethiopia
Kenya
Malawi
Rwanda
Tanzania
Uganda
Zambia
ASIA
China
India
Indonesia
Papua New Guinea
The Philippines
Thailand
Vietnam
Yemen
AMERICAS
Bolivia
Brazil
Colombia
Costa Rica
Cuba
Dominican Republic
Ecuador
El Salvador
Guatemala
Haiti
United States: Hawaii
Honduras
Jamaica
Mexico
Nicaragua
Panama
Peru
Venezuela
Glossary
Acknowledgements
HOW TO USE THIS EBOOK
Select one of the chapters from the main contents list and you will be taken
straight to that chapter.
Look out for linked text (which is blue) throughout the ebook that you can
select to help you navigate between related sections.
You can double tap images and tables to increase their size. To return to the
original view, just tap the cross in the top left-hand corner of the screen.
INTRODUCTION
‘Coffee has never been better than it is today. Producers know more than ever
before about growing coffee and have access to more varieties and specialist
growing techniques. Coffee roasters have never before been so likely to
appreciate the importance of using freshly harvested coffee beans, and their
understanding of the roasting process continues to improve. There are now
more and more cafés selling really good coffee, using the best equipment and
training their staff more effectively.’ I wrote these words in the introduction
to the first edition of this book and they are still true today.
The world of great coffee has now truly gone mainstream. Every major
city in the world has a plethora of cafés and coffee businesses, all run by
passionate people working hard to share something exciting and delightful
about coffee.
The coffee industry is enormous and has spread around the world. Today,
125 million people depend on coffee production for their livelihood, and
coffee is consumed in every part of the globe. Coffee is entwined with both
the economic and cultural histories of so many countries yet very few coffee
drinkers have, in the past, scratched the surface to see what is underneath.
Yet while many people may not have explored the world of coffee, a large
portion of coffee drinkers are seeking out coffee that has been sourced
carefully, sold traceably, and brewed with skill and care.
The coffee industry can be separated into two distinct areas: commodity
and speciality. In this book we will primarily be dealing with speciality
coffees. These are coffees that are defined by their quality and by how good
they taste. Their origin is important, as this will often determine their
flavour. Commodity coffee is the term used to describe coffees that are not
traded on their quality, but are considered simply to be ‘coffee’. Where they
are grown doesn’t matter much, nor when they were harvested or how they
were processed. Commodity coffee has defined the way that much of the
world thinks about coffee – a generic product from somewhere tropical; an
efficient, if bitter, way to get caffeine into the bloodstream and to clear the
mind in the morning. The idea that one might drink coffee for pleasure, to
delight in its complexity of flavour, still has relatively little penetration into
global culture. There are many differences between the production and
international trade of speciality coffees and commodity coffees as they are
quite different products.
While this new world of coffee has boomed, it can still be a little
intimidating. The language of coffee is foreign to most people, and many cafés
are eager to share the story of the coffee they brew: its variety, its postharvest
processing or the people behind it. This can be overwhelming or
frustrating. This book is written to make sense of that language, to give
context to the stories of the cups of coffee you drink, to highlight what makes
each farm or cooperative different and interesting.
At first, the sheer diversity of coffees and the huge volume of information
available can be off-putting. However, once you start to understand a little
about coffee, the diversity and information are the very things that make it so
compelling. I hope this book serves you well, and brings a little more pleasure
to every cup of coffee you drink.
During the 19th century, coffee houses in India became popular and often raucous meeting
places for English gentlemen to socialize, do business, discuss the news and to gossip.
R
ARABICA AND ROBUSTA
When talking about coffee, people are usually referring to the fruit from one particular species
of tree: Coffea arabica. Arabica makes up most of the coffee produced each year, and it is
grown in dozens of countries between the Tropic of Capricorn and the Tropic of Cancer. It isn’t
the only species of coffee, however. In fact, over 120 different species have been identified to
date but only one other is grown in any quantity and this is Coffea canephora, a plant we
commonly refer to as Robusta.
obusta is actually something of a brand name given to the species, chosen
to highlight its attributes. It was discovered in the Belgian Congo (what is
now the Democratic Republic of the Congo) in the late-19th century and
its commercial potential was clear. It was able to grow and fruit at lower
altitudes than the existing Arabica plants, in higher temperatures, and was
more resistant to disease. These attributes are what still drive much of the
production of Robusta today, and because of the way it is grown it is
substantially cheaper to produce. There is an inevitable downside, however:
it doesn’t taste very good.
Some people will make a rather specious argument that a really wellproduced
Robusta coffee can taste better than a poor Arabica coffee and this
may be true, but it does nothing to convince us that Robusta actually tastes
good. It is generally difficult to ascribe particular tastes to coffees, but I think
it would be fair to say that Robusta has a woody, burnt-rubber quality in the
cup. It usually has very little acidity, but will have a heavy body and
mouthfeel. There are, of course, grades of quality within Robusta, and it is
possible to produce higher-quality Robustas. It has been a staple of the
Italian espresso culture for many years, but currently most of the Robusta
produced around the world ends up in large manufacturing plants destined to
become the pariah of our industry: instant soluble coffee.
For the soluble coffee industry, price is far more important than flavour,
and the global reliance on coffee as a fast-food product means that Robusta
makes up around 40 per cent of the world’s coffee produced each year. This
percentage is somewhat variable, driven by fluctuations in price and demand.
For example, an increase in the global price of coffee may result in more
Robusta production, as large multinational coffee companies may need to
find cheaper alternatives to Arabica. Interestingly, in the past when roasters
have substituted Robusta coffees for Arabica in big commercial blends, there
has been a downward trend in coffee consumption. This might be related to
flavour, or to the fact that Robusta has about twice the caffeine content of
Arabica. Either way, when big brands cut corners, consumers notice – or at
least change their coffee-drinking habits.
THE GENETICS OF COFFEE
The coffee industry treated Robusta like an ugly sister to Arabica until a
rather interesting genetic discovery was made. Once scientists began
sequencing the genes, it became clear that the two species are not cousins or
siblings. Instead it appears that Robusta is, in fact, a parent of Arabica. Most
likely somewhere in southern Sudan, Robusta crossed with another species
called Coffea euginoides and produced Arabica. This new species spread and
really began to flourish in Ethiopia, long considered the birthplace of coffee.
Taken from a 19th-century book of medical botany, this handcoloured copperplate engraving by
James Sowerby illustrates the white flower, bean and leaf of Coffea arabica.
Currently 129 species of Coffea have been identified, mostly through the
work of Kew Gardens in London, though most look very different to the
plants and beans we are familiar with. Many of these species are indigenous
to Madagascar, though others grow in parts of southern Asia, even as far
south as Australia. None of these species has any commercial attention at the
moment, but scientists are beginning to show more interest in them because
of a concern facing the coffee industry: the lack of genetic diversity of the
plants currently in cultivation.
The way that coffee has spread around the world means we have a global
crop with a common ancestry. There is little variation in the genetic make-up
of coffee plants, and this exposes global coffee production to massive risk. A
disease that can attack one plant can likely attack them all, something the
wine industry suffered with Phylloxera, an aphid that devastated huge
swathes of grape vines across Europe in the 1860s and 1870s.
Most of the 129 species of Coffea are indigenous to Madagascar but plantations around the
world, such as this one in Queensland, Australia, mean that it is now a global crop.
T
THE COFFEE TREE
This section deals only with the most interesting of the coffee species, Coffea arabica. At first
glance, all Arabica trees look similar: a thin trunk with numerous branches coming off it,
supporting foliage and fruit. However, if you look closer there are many differences between
trees, determined by the variety of Arabica being grown. Different varieties yield different
amounts of fruit, in different colours, and some carry the fruit in clusters, while others have fruit
evenly spaced down the branch.
here are also big differences between the leaves of plants of different
varieties, but more importantly between the cup characteristics when the
seeds of these varieties are harvested and brewed. Different varieties have
different qualities of flavour, and may also have different mouthfeels. It is
always important to remember that for the bulk of coffee producers, flavour
is not the main reason they have selected a certain variety to grow. The yield
of the tree and its resistance to disease are usually of great value to those who
depend on growing coffee for their livelihood. That is not to say that all
producers choose their varieties this way, but one should bear in mind the
impact of these choices on the profitability and income of the producer.
FROM SEED TO TREE
Most established coffee farms have a nursery in which to raise seedlings
before planting them out on the farm for production. The coffee beans are
first planted in rich soil, and will soon germinate. The bean itself is then lifted
out of the ground by the developing shoot, and at this stage they are often
called ‘soldiers’. They look strangely like a roasted coffee bean has been
attached to the top of a thin green stem. Not long after this, the bean bursts
open to reveal the first leaves. Coffee plants grow quickly and after 6–12
months they can be moved from the nursery into production.
Coffee growing requires the investment of not only money, but also time.
A coffee farmer will usually have to wait three years for a newly planted tree
to fruit properly. Making the decision to begin growing coffee is a serious one,
and this also means that if a producer abandons coffee it will be difficult to
encourage him to return to the crop in the future.
Germinated coffee shoots, known as ‘soldiers’, are the first stage of coffee plant growth.
‘Soldiers’ soon burst open to reveal green leaves. Within 6 to 12 months the plants are fully
established and can be moved from the nursery, ready for planting.
PESTS AND DISEASES
The coffee tree is susceptible to a variety of pests and diseases. Two of the most common
are coffee leaf rust and the coffee berry borer.
COFFEE LEAF RUST
Known as roya in many countries, this is a fungus (Hemileia vastatrix) that causes orange
lesions on the leaves. It impairs photosynthesis, then causes the leaves to drop and
eventually can kill the tree. It was first documented in East Africa in 1861, although it was not
not studied until it began to affect plants in Sri Lanka in 1869 where it pretty much destroyed
the coffee plantations over the following ten years. It spread to Brazil in 1970, perhaps
brought over from Africa with a shipment of cacao seeds, and quickly spread into Central
America.
It is now found in every coffee-producing country in the world and the higher temperatures
brought about through climate change are exacerbating the situation. In 2013 several
Central American countries declared a state of emergency due to the damage caused by
rust.
COFFEE BERRY BORER
Also known widely as broca, this is a small beetle (Hypothenemus hampei) that lays its eggs
inside coffee cherries. The hatching young eat the cherries, thereby reducing the quantity
and quality of the crop. The beetle is native to Africa, although it is now the most harmful
pest to coffee crops across the world. Research is being done into different methods of
control, including chemical pesticides, traps and biological controls.
BLOSSOM AND FRUIT
Most coffee trees have one main harvest per year, though the trees in some
countries have a second harvest, which is usually smaller and often of a
slightly lower quality. The cycle is first triggered by a prolonged period of
rainfall. This causes the trees to bloom, producing lots of white blossom
flowers with a strong scent that is reminiscent of jasmine.
Insects such as bees pollinate the flowers, although Arabica is able to self
pollinate, meaning that unless they are knocked off the tree by adverse
weather, the flowers will always yield fruit.
It takes up to nine months until the fruits are ready to harvest.
Unfortunately, coffee cherries do not ripen uniformly. The coffee producer
has a difficult choice between harvesting all the fruits from each tree at the
same time and having a certain quantity of unripe or overripe coffee cherries
in the harvest, or paying pickers to do multiple passes of the same trees so
each cherry is harvested when it is perfectly ripe.
Once or twice a year, the strongly scented blossoms of coffee appear after a long period of
rainfall. Because the Arabica is self-pollinating, its flowers will always yield fruit.
Coffee seedlings growing in Chinchiná, Colombia. Plants will be raised here for five months
before being sold to plantations. After another three years of growth, the trees will begin to fruit
properly.
The Hacienda de Guayabal coffee plantation, Colombia.
T
THE COFFEE FRUIT
Coffee is a part of our everyday lives, yet how many of us outside the coffee-producing
countries have ever seen, or would even recognize, a coffee cherry?
he size of the fruit varies between varieties of coffee, but on the whole they
are the size of a small grape. Unlike grapes, most of the volume of the fruit
is provided by the central seeds, although there is a thin layer of fruit flesh
under the skin.
All cherries start out green and develop deeper colours as the fruit
matures. The skin is usually a deep red when ripe, though some trees have
yellow fruit, and occasionally a cross between a yellow-fruiting tree and a
red-fruiting tree will yield orange fruit. While fruit colour isn’t thought to
influence yield, yellow-fruiting trees have often been avoided as it is harder to
determine when the fruit is ripe. Red fruit starts green, goes through a yellow
stage and then turns red. This makes ripeness much easier to identify when
coffee is being picked by hand.
Ripeness is tied to the quantity of sugar in the fruit, which is vitally
important when trying to grow delicious coffee. Generally speaking, the more
sugar in the fruit the better. However, different producers harvest their
cherries at different stages of ripeness. Some believe that a mixture of
cherries at different stages of ripeness can add complexity to a coffee, though
all the cherries should be properly ripe, and none of them overripe as they
eventually develop an unpleasant flavour.
Coffee seeds are extracted from their silverskin and parchment to reveal the bean we grind and
brew.
SWEET FRUITS
The flesh of the coffee fruit is surprisingly delicious when ripe, a pleasing honeydew melon
sweetness, with a little refreshing acidity. The fruits are sometimes squeezed to make a
drink, but even when ripe they are not particularly juicy, and you have to work to separate
the flesh from the seeds.
THE SEED
The seed, or coffee bean, is made up of several layers, most of which will be
removed during processing, leaving behind the bean we grind and brew. The
seed has a protective outer layer, called the parchment, then a thinner layer
wrapped around it, called the silverskin.
Most coffee cherries contain two seeds, which face each other inside the
berry, becoming flattened along one side as they develop. Occasionally, only
one seed inside a berry will germinate and grow and these are known as
peaberries. Instead of having a flattened surface on one side, these seeds are
rounded and make up around five per cent of the crop. These peaberries are
usually separated from the rest of the crop and some people believe that they
have particularly desirable qualities or that they roast in a different way to
the flattened beans.
F
COFFEE VARIETIES
The first coffee trees to be cultivated originated in Ethiopia, and this same variety, Typica, is still
widely grown today. Many other varieties now exist, some natural mutations and others the
result of cross-breeding. Some varieties have explicit taste characteristics of their own, while
others take on their characteristics from the terroir in which they are grown, the way they are
cultivated and the way they are processed after harvest.
ew coffee consumers are aware that there are different varieties of the
Arabica coffee tree, mainly because much of the world’s coffee always has
been, and still is, traded by origin. A particular lot may come from many
farms and, by the time of export, no one knows which varieties the
contributing producers had grown, only which part of the world it was grown
in. This is starting to change, but we still know relatively little about how
much impact the variety of the tree can have on the taste of the cup of coffee.
Please note that the descriptions of the most common varieties below will
not include any specific notes on taste, unless there is something definite and
distinct. So many factors influence cup quality and, coupled with the lack of
organized research on the way this can be influenced by variety, it would be
misleading to make any bold claims in these pages.
VARIETIES AND VARIETALS
There is often some confusion over the terms ‘variety’ and ‘varietal’. Varieties are genetically
distinct variations of a single species, in this case Coffea arabica, that may show different
characteristics in the tree structure, leaves or fruit. ‘Cultivar’ is another acceptable term to
use here, as this is just a truncation of ‘cultivated variety’.
‘Varietal’ should be used when referring to a specific instance of a variety. When referring to
the production of one farm, for example, it would be correct to say that it was one hundred
per cent Bourbon varietal.
TYPICA
This is considered the original variety from which all other varieties have
mutated or been genetically selected. The Dutch were the first to spread
coffee around the world for commercial production and this was the variety
they took with them. The fruit is usually red and Typica is capable of
producing excellent cup quality, though with a relatively small yield
compared to other varieties. It is still grown extensively in many different
parts of the world and, as a result, is known by several different names
including criollo, sumatra and arabigo.
BOURBON
This was a natural mutation of Typica, which occurred on the island of
Réunion (at the time called Bourbon). The yield is higher than that of Typica,
and many in the speciality industry believe that it has a distinctive sweetness,
making it prized and desirable. There are various variations in the colour of
the fruit: red, yellow and occasionally orange. This variety was grown very
widely in the past but in many producing countries it was replaced by higheryielding
varieties. This was at a time when the market had not yet matured
sufficiently to reward a high enough price to compensate for the lower yields
it produces compared to newer varieties.
Bourbon
MUNDO NOVO
A natural hybrid of Typica and Bourbon, this variety was named after the
place in Brazil where it was discovered in the 1940s. It is grown for its
relatively high yield, strength and disease resistance, and also for its success
at altitudes of around 1,000–1,200m (3,300–3,900 feet) which are common
in Brazil.
CATURRA
This is a mutation of Bourbon, discovered in Brazil in 1937. Its yields are
relatively high, though it has the capacity for overbearing, where the tree
produces more fruit than it can sustain and succumbs to die-back. However,
good farm management can avoid this situation. This variety has been
especially popular in Colombia and Central America, though it is still fairly
common in Brazil. Cup quality is considered good, and while quality
increases with altitude, yield decreases. There are both red and yellow
variations and it is a low-growing variety, often referred to as dwarf or semidwarf,
popular because they are easier to pick by hand.
Caturra
CATUAI
This is a hybrid between Caturra and Mundo Novo created by the Instituto
Agronomico do Campinas in Brazil in the 1950s and 1960s. It was selected as
it combined the dwarf characteristics of Caturra with the yield and strength
of Mundo Novo. Like Caturra, there are red and yellow varieties.
MARAGOGYPE
One of the more easily recognized varieties, Maragogype is a mutation of
Typica, first discovered in Brazil. It is notable, and often considered
desirable, due to the unusually large size of its beans. The tree also has
exceptionally large leaves but a relatively low yield. This coffee is often
referred to as ‘Elephant’ or ‘Elephant Bean’ coffee due to its size. The fruits
usually ripen red.
SL-28
A now prized variety, SL-28 was created in Kenya by Scott Laboratories in
the 1930s, selected from a drought-resistant variety from Tanzania. The
fruits are red when ripe and the beans are notably larger than average. This
variety is considered to be capable of producing a cup with a distinct fruit
flavour, often described as blackcurrant. It is quite susceptible to coffee leaf
rust, and performs better at higher altitudes.
SL-34
This variety was selected from French Mission Bourbon, a variety brought
back to Africa from Bourbon (Réunion) and first appearing in Tanzania and
then in Kenya. It is also capable of distinct fruit flavours but is generally
considered to be inferior to SL-28 in cup quality. It is also susceptible to
coffee leaf rust, and the fruits ripen red.
GEISHA OR GESHA
There is some debate over the correct name for this variety, though ‘Geisha’
is more commonly used. Gesha is a town in western Ethiopia and, while the
variety was brought to Panama from Costa Rica, it is believed to be Ethiopian
in origin. The variety is considered to produce exceptionally aromatic/floral
cups, and the demand for it has driven up prices in recent years.
It has gained prominence and popularity dramatically since 2004 when
one Panamanian farm, Hacienda La Esmeralda, entered a competition with a
Geisha lot. The coffee proved so unusual and distinct that it attracted an
incredibly high bid of $21/lb at auction. This record bid was beaten in 2006
and 2007, reaching $130/lb – nearly one hundred times more than a
commodity-grade coffee. This has since encouraged many producers in
Central and South America to plant this variety.
Geisha/Gesha
PACAS
Pacas is a natural mutation of Bourbon, discovered in El Salvador in 1949 by
the Pacas family. It has red fruits and its low-growing habit makes picking
easy. Its cup quality is considered similar to Bourbon, and is therefore
desirable.
VILLA SARCHI
Named after the town in Costa Rica where it was discovered, this is another
natural mutation of Bourbon that, like Pacas, exhibits dwarfism. It is
currently being bred to produce very high yields, and it is capable of excellent
cup quality. The fruits ripen red.
PACAMARA
This is a cross between the Pacas and Maragogype varieties, created in El
Salvador in 1958. Like Maragogype, it has extremely large leaves, fruit and
coffee beans. It also has distinct cup characteristics that can be positively
described. It can taste like chocolate and fruit, but it also has the capacity for
unpleasantly herbal, onion-like cups. The fruits ripen red.
Pacamara
KENT
Named after a planter who worked on a selection programme in India in the
1920s, this variety was developed for its resistance to coffee leaf rust, though
it can be destroyed by new strains of the disease.
S795
Also developed in India, this is a cross between Kent and S288, an older
selection resistant to coffee leaf rust. It is widely planted in India and
Indonesia, although it is now considered to have lost much of its resistance.
WILD ARABICA VARIETIES
Most of the above varieties are genetically extremely similar, as they all stem
from one variety, Typica. Many of the coffee trees grown in Ethiopia,
however, are not selected cultivars, but are indigenous heirloom varieties
that probably result from cross-breeding between different species as well as
different varieties. Little work has been done so far to catalogue or explore
the genetic diversity and cup quality of these wild varieties.
Arabica coffee is harvested by machine in Cabo Verde, Brazil. This method of collecting fruit is
efficient, but the harvest must later be sorted to select only ripe cherries.
T
HARVESTING COFFEE
Careful harvesting of coffee cherries is fundamentally important to the quality of the resulting
cup of coffee. Unsurprisingly, coffee beans harvested from fruit at peak ripeness generally taste
the best. Many experts see the harvest as the point at which the quality of the coffee peaks, and
every stage thereafter is about preserving quality rather than improving it.
he greatest challenge in harvesting high-quality coffee is perhaps the
topography of the land on which the coffee is growing. Great coffee
requires altitude and many coffee farms are located on steep slopes in
mountainous areas. Simply navigating between the trees can be difficult, if
not downright dangerous. This isn’t true of every coffee farm, however.
MACHINE HARVESTING
Brazil has large areas of flat land at high altitude where coffee proliferates.
The estates in these areas drive large machines down the neat rows of coffee
trees to harvest the cherries. These machines essentially shake the trees until
the fruit comes loose. There are numerous downsides to machine harvesting,
the biggest being the issue of collecting fruit before it is necessarily ripe. The
cherries on the branch of a coffee tree ripen at different rates, so each branch
has both ripe and unripe cherries together. The machines do not differentiate
and pick all the cherries at once. This means they must be sorted after harvest
to separate the ripe from the unripe, and to discard the twigs and leaves that
also get shaken off the tree. The cost of the coffee’s production will be lower
than any other harvesting method, but at the expense of the quality of the
harvest as a whole.
STRIP PICKING
A great deal of coffee is still harvested by hand as machines simply cannot
operate in hilly areas. One of the faster methods of hand-picking is to strip all
the cherries off a branch together with one deft movement. Like machine
harvesting, this is a quick but imprecise way to pick the cherries. It doesn’t
require expensive equipment or flat land, but still results in a mixed bag of
ripe and unripe cherries that must be sorted later.
HAND-PICKING
For high-quality coffee, hand-picking remains the most effective way of
harvesting. Pickers select only the cherries that are ready for harvest, leaving
the unripe fruit on the tree to be picked later. This is hard labour and
producers face the challenge of incentivizing their pickers to harvest only the
ripe fruit. Pickers are paid by the weight of the fruit they pick, which
encourages them to pick unripe fruit to make up additional weight. Qualityconscious
producers have to work carefully with their picking teams to make
sure they are also paid for uniform ripeness.
Cherries can be sorted in a flotation tank. Ripe cherries sink to the bottom of the tank and are
pumped out for processing while unripe fruit floats to the top and is treated separately.
FALLEN FRUIT
Coffee growers collect any fruit that naturally falls off the trees – ripe or not. This is usually
collected separately and will become part of the lower quality lots that even the best farms
in the world inevitably produce. Leaving fallen fruit on the ground under the trees can cause
problems, as they tend to attract pests such as coffee berry borer.
THE PROBLEMS OF LABOUR
The cost of hand-picking coffee is proving a growing challenge and
contributes a large part of the production costs. This is one of the primary
reasons that coffees produced in developed economies – such as Kona coffees
produced in Hawaii – are so expensive. In rapidly developing countries,
people simply don’t want to pick coffee for a living. Coffee farms in Central
America often employ itinerant pickers who travel from country to country,
as different regions harvest at slightly different times. Currently, many of
these workers are from Nicaragua as it is the weakest economy in the region.
Finding people to harvest coffee is likely to continue to be a challenge, and in
fact at one stage Puerto Rico was using its prisoners to harvest coffee.
SORTING THE BEANS
After picking, the cherries are often sorted using a variety of different
methods to prevent unripe or overripe coffee from joining the bulk of the lot.
In parts of the world with relatively low labour costs, and little money
available for investment in equipment, this is done by hand.
In more developed countries, the cherries are often sorted using a
flotation tank. The cherries are poured into a large tank of water, where the
ripe fruit sinks to the bottom. They are pumped from there into the main
processing section. Unripe fruit floats to the top and is skimmed off to be
processed separately.
Where labour costs are low, cherries are picked by hand to maximize the harvest of ripe fruit.
A worker in El Salvador sorts hand-picked fruit.
Cherry harvests are processed at a wet mill, where beans are separated from the parchment and
then dried, ready for storage and shipping.
A
PROCESSING
How a coffee is processed after harvest can have a dramatic effect on the resulting cup, so it has
become an increasingly important part of how it is described and sold. It would be a mistake to
believe that coffee producers have flavour in mind when they choose their processing methods.
A very small percentage do, but for most producers the goal is to ensure the processing causes
the least possible incidence of ‘defect’ and causes no drop in the quality, and thus the monetary
value, of the coffee.
fter harvest, the coffee cherries are taken to a wet mill to separate the
beans from the flesh and dry the beans so they are safe for storage. Coffee
beans start with a moisture content of around 60 per cent, and should be
dried to around 11–12 per cent to ensure they do not rot while waiting to be
sold and shipped. A wet mill can be anything from a small collection of
equipment on an individual farm, to a very large industrialized facility for
processing enormous amounts of coffee.
The wet mill processes coffee from the cherry stage to the parchment
stage, when the bean is dry but still covered with its layer of parchment or
pergamino. Most believe that the coffee is pretty well protected by this outer
layer, and that it does not really begin to degrade until the coffee is hulled to
remove the parchment at the last possible moment before the coffee ships.
The term ‘wet milling’ is slightly misleading as some producers use very
little, if any, water in the processing methods they use. It does, however,
make the distinction between this initial processing and the later stage when
the hulling and grading takes place, known as ‘dry milling’.
There is no doubt that processing can have a massive impact on the cup
quality of the coffee, and there is a growing trend for skilled producers to
manipulate the process in order to yield specific qualities in the cup.
However, these producers are very rare on the global production scale.
The goal of processing for most is to make the coffee as profitable as
possible and this is taken into account when a producer chooses which
processing method to use. Some processes require more time, investment or
natural resources than others, and so it is an important decision for any
coffee producer.
DEFINING ‘DEFECT’
The term ‘defect’ is used quite specifically in coffee. It is used to describe individual beans
that have developed problems that result in bad flavours. Some defects can be spotted by
taking a look at the raw coffee, while others only come to light when the coffee is tasted.
A mild defect might be a bean that has been damaged by insects, and this is easy to spot. A
more serious problem is a phenolic coffee, where the coffee has a very harsh, metallic, paintstripper
flavour, mixed with notes of sulphur (it is as bad as it sounds). The cause of this
defect isn’t well understood yet. Bad processing can also cause defects, including giving the
coffee a fermented flavour and an unpleasantly dirty, almost boozy quality. It can also add a
taste reminiscent of barnyards and rotten fruit.
THE NATURAL PROCESS
Also known as the dry process, this is the oldest method of processing coffee.
After harvest, the coffee cherries are spread out in a thin layer to dry in the
sun. Some producers spread them out on brick patios, others use special
raised drying tables, which allow a better airflow around the cherry, resulting
in more even drying. The cherries must be turned regularly to avoid mould,
fermentation or rotting taking place. Once the coffee is properly dry, the
outer husk of skin and dried fruit are removed mechanically, and the raw
coffee is then stored before export.
The natural process itself adds certain flavours to the coffee, sometimes
positive but often quite unpleasant. However, if there is no access to water
this may be the only process open to the producer and is therefore common
in places like Ethiopia, and also parts of Brazil. Worldwide, the dry method is
generally deemed only suitable for very low-quality or unripe coffee, and the
bulk of coffee produced this way is processed as cheaply as possible as it
usually ends up in the domestic market and has very little value. It seems
counterintuitive that a producer would invest in the drying tables necessary
for the little return on offer. However, there are those who choose this
method to process high-quality coffee, and they often find the process to be
more expensive due to the additional labour involved in the attentive, careful
drying of the cherries.
This process remains quite traditional in places, and there is certainly
demand for the cup qualities that a carefully processed lot can have. The
process will often add fruit flavours to the coffee, regardless of variety and
terroir. These are usually described as hints of blueberry, strawberry or
tropical fruit, but sometimes with negative terms like barnyard, wild, ferment
and manure.
High-quality naturals polarize those who work in coffee. Many see value
in coffees that taste spectacularly fruity, and believe they are extremely
useful for showcasing the possibilities of flavour that coffee has to offer.
Others find the wild flavours unpleasant, or have concerns about buyers
encouraging producers to process more of their coffee through the natural
process. With such an unpredictable process, a high-quality lot could be
damaged irreparably and significantly reduce the producer’s income.
Dry processing is the oldest method with which to treat picked cherries. They are dried in the sun
and turned regularly to prevent fermentation, mould and rot.
A depulper machine is used to strip flesh off coffee cherries. They are then moved to a clean tank
where the remaining flesh is removed through fermentation.
DRYING SPEED AND STORAGE POTENTIAL
While still at an early stage, research seems to suggest that drying coffee very slowly and
very evenly can have benefits not only to quality in the short term, but also to how long a
coffee will retain its good flavour when stored in its raw state. Coffees dried too quickly can
lose their attractive qualities shortly after being delivered to the roaster, in some cases
within a few months or even weeks, which is bad news for both the roaster and the end
consumer.
THE WASHED PROCESS
The goal of the washed process is to remove all of the sticky flesh from the
coffee seed before it is dried. This greatly reduces the chance of something
going wrong during drying, so the coffee is likely to be worth more. However,
this particular process is much more expensive than the others.
After picking, the coffee cherry has its outer skin and most of the fruit
flesh stripped off using a machine called a depulper. The coffee is then moved
to a clean tank or trough of water where the remainder of the flesh is removed
by fermentation.
The fruit flesh contains a lot of pectin and it is firmly attached to the seed
but the fermentation breaks down the remaining flesh enough for it to be
washed away. Different producers use different amounts of water during the
fermentation stage, and there are some environmental concerns about this
method, partly due to the eventual fate of the waste water, which can be toxic.
The amount of time that fermentation takes depends on several factors
including the altitude and ambient temperature. The hotter it is, the faster
this process will occur. If the coffee is left too long to ferment then negative
flavours can creep in. There are many different methods for checking
whether the process is finished. Some producers rub the coffee as it will
squeak if the fruit flesh has broken down, leaving the seed completely
smooth. Others put a stick into the tank and if it stands up, supported by the
slightly gelatinous water full of pectin, then the process is done.
After fermentation, the coffee is washed to remove the leftover debris,
then it is ready to be dried. This is usually done in the sun by spreading out
the coffee on brick patios or raised drying tables. In the same way as the
natural method described above, the coffee must be turned regularly with
large rakes to ensure slow and even drying.
Where there is a lack of sunshine or excess humidity, some producers use
mechanical dryers to dry the beans down to a moisture content of around 11–
12 per cent. In terms of cup quality, mechanical drying is often considered
inferior to sun drying, and it seems that even drying in the sun on a patio may
be too fast to achieve the best possible quality (see Drying Speed and Storage
Potential). While many producers of high-quality coffee choose the wet
process in an effort to reduce defect, it can also have an impact on the cup
quality. Compared to other processes, wet-processed coffees tend to present
a higher level of acidity, increased complexity and what is described as a
cleaner cup. ‘Cleanliness’ is an important term used in coffee to indicate the
absence of any negative flavours, such as off tastes or unusual harshness and
astringency.
HYBRID PROCESSES
THE PULPED NATURAL PROCESS
Mainly used in Brazil, this process is the result of experiments run by a
coffee-processing equipment manufacturer called Pinhalense. The idea was
to produce coffees with high cup quality using less water than that used in the
washed process.
After picking, the coffee is mechanically depulped, stripping all of the skin
and much of the fruit flesh from the beans. From here it goes straight out to
dry on patios or drying beds. With less flesh surrounding the beans there is a
decreased risk of defect, yet there is still enough sugar in the surrounding
fruit to see a noticeable increase in sweetness and body in the coffee. This
process still requires careful drying after depulping.
Hulled coffee is sorted by hand to grade bean size and colour, and remove any defects. This
process is time-consuming but creates coffee of a much higher quality.
THE HONEY (MIEL) PROCESS
This process is very similar to the pulped natural process but used in a
number of Central American countries, including Costa Rica and El
Salvador. The coffee is mechanically depulped, but the method uses even less
water than the pulped natural process. The depulping machines can usually
be controlled to leave a specific percentage of the flesh on the beans. The
resulting coffee is then referred to as one hundred per cent honey or twenty
per cent honey, for example. The name miel is the Spanish term for the fruit
mucilage, meaning ‘honey’.
With larger quantities of flesh being left on the beans, there is a higher risk
of fermentation and defect when the coffee is dried.
THE SEMI-WASHED/WET-HULLED PROCESS
This process is common in Indonesia, where it is known as giling basah. After
picking, the coffee is depulped and then briefly dried. Instead of drying the
coffee to a moisture content of 11–12 per cent as the other processes do, in the
semi-washed process the coffee is only dried to 30–35 per cent. It is then
hulled, stripping off the parchment and exposing the green coffee beans
beneath. The naked beans are then dried again until they are dry enough to be
stored without the risk of rotting. This second drying gives the beans a
distinctive deep swamp-green colour.
The semi-washed process is the one exception to the practice of keeping
the parchment on the beans until just before shipping. It is considered by
many to result in a form of defect, but the market has come to associate the
flavours with coffees from Indonesia and therefore does not demand an end
to the practice. Semi-washed coffees have lower acidity and more body than
other coffees, and the process also creates a number of different flavours such
as wood, earthy, mustiness, spice, tobacco and leather. There is strong
disagreement within the industry over whether or not this is desirable. Many
feel that these flavours dominate the flavour of the coffee (in the same way
the natural process does), and we rarely get to find out how coffees from
Indonesia really taste. However, there are some Indonesian coffees that are
processed by the wet method, and they are worth looking out for. It should be
clear on the packaging as they should be described as ‘washed’ or ‘fully
washed’.
HULLING AND SHIPPING
When they leave the wet mill, the beans are still enclosed in their layer of
parchment (unless they have been processed by the semi-washed method).
Now the moisture content is low enough for the coffee to be stored without
risk of rotting. Traditionally, coffee is intentionally stored at this stage in
reposo (at rest) for thirty to sixty days.
The traditional practice of holding the coffee in reposo has not been fully
researched, although anecdotal evidence suggests that if this step is missed
then the coffee can taste green and unpleasant until it has aged further. There
is also evidence that this stage influences how well the coffee will age once
shipped, probably linked to the moisture content within the coffee.
At the end of this period the coffee is sold and then hulled to remove the
parchment. Up until this point the parchment has provided a protective
layer, but it also adds weight and bulk to the coffee so it is removed to make
shipping less expensive.
The hulling is done mechanically in a dry mill (as opposed to a wet mill
where the coffee was processed to remove the flesh and dry the beans). Dry
mills also usually have equipment to grade and sort the coffee. Once hulled,
the green coffee beans can be passed through a machine that examines the
colour and rejects any coffee with obvious defects. The coffee can be sorted
by bean size using large shaking sieves with varying hole sizes, and finally it is
graded by hand.
This time-consuming process is performed at a large table with a central
conveyor, or sometimes on large patios, usually by women rather than men.
They pick through their allocation of coffee and remove all the defects they
can, sometimes within a given time frame controlled by an automated
conveyor. This is a slow process, adding significant cost to the coffee, but also
massively increasing its quality. It is undeniably a difficult, monotonous job
and it is right that high-quality coffees cost more, so that the people who do
this difficult work can be better paid.
Workers sew up 60-kg (132-lb) jute bags near Yirgacheffe, a coffee-growing community in southcentral
Ethiopia. Their popular product is exported around the world.
BAGGING
The coffee is now ready for bagging, either into 60kg (132lb) or 69kg (152lb)
jute bags, depending on the country of origin. In some cases the bags are lined
with a protective material, such as a multilayer polyethylene, to make them
resistant to moisture, or the coffee can be vacuum-packed and shipped in
cardboard boxes.
Jute has long remained the material of choice because it is cheap,
accessible and has little environmental impact. However, as the speciality
coffee industry is increasingly concerned with the condition of coffee during
shipping and in ongoing storage, new materials are being explored.
SHIPPING
Coffee is generally transported from its country of origin in shipping
containers. These hold up to three hundred bags of coffee, although lowquality
coffees are sometimes just tipped into a giant lining covering the walls
of the container, as the waiting roaster will process the entire container on
the day it arrives. The containers are emptied out like dump trucks into a
receiving station at the roasting facility.
Transporting coffee in container ships has a relatively low impact on the
environment (certainly compared to other aspects of the coffee industry),
and it is also relatively cheap. The downside is that the coffee can be exposed
to both heat and moisture that may damage its quality. Shipping is also a
complicated process, with bureaucracy in many countries causing roasters
huge amounts of stress as containers of coffee sit for weeks or even months in
hot, humid ports waiting for their paperwork. As air freight remains both an
environmentally unfriendly and financially unsustainable alternative, many
in the speciality coffee industry remain frustrated by this aspect of the
business.
SIZING AND GRADING
Coffee has, in many countries, been graded by size longer than it has been
graded by quality. In fact the two things are still considered related, although
technically they are not. Different countries will use different terminology
around their grading (see Common Size Grades).
Grading is generally done with sieves, numbered to indicate the size of the
perforations. Traditionally the even numbers (such as 14, 16 and 18) were
used for Arabica, while odd numbers were used for Robusta. Once the coffee
is hulled it is mechanically shaken through layers of sieves to separate out the
different grades.
Peaberry (PB) is a grade based on the smallest whole beans (not the
broken pieces though). Peaberries occur when a coffee berry has just one
seed inside rather than two. They are considered to have a greater intensity of
flavour, although this may not be universally true. It is always an interesting
experience to compare the flavour of the the peaberry selection of a coffee
against that of the larger beans.
While larger beans aren’t necessarily better, the advantage of having a
relatively small size range is that roasting the coffee is easier, and the
resultant roast is likely to be more uniform. This is because coffee beans of
different sizes also have different densities. During roasting, the smaller
coffee beans, or the less dense ones, will roast much faster than the larger, or
denser beans. This will mean that at least a portion of the coffee in a mixed
batch will not have reached the ideal roast level.
COMMON SIZE GRADES
These are the most common sizing grades used in the following coffee-producing areas.
COLOMBIA
Supremo and Excelso are very common grades. Excelso is screen sizes 14–16, and is smaller
than Supremo which is sizes 16–18 (or above). Colombia pioneered how it sold its coffee,
and uses grades like this to emphasize its quality.
CENTRAL AMERICA
Here the larger sizes are traditionally referred to as Superior (again, emphasizing quality
through size). Peaberries are known as caracol.
AFRICA
The largest screen size is generally considered AA, then AB and then A. Coffee-producing
countries such as Kenya have a strong focus on quality relating to size grading and AA lots
tend to sell for higher prices in their internal auction system.
T
HOW COFFEE IS TRADED
It is often quoted that coffee is the second-most traded commodity in the world. It is not and,
whether based on frequency or monetary value, is not even in the top five. Nonetheless, how
coffee is traded has become a focus for ethical trade organizations. The relationship between
the buyer and the producer is often seen as the First World exploiting the Third World.
However, while there are undoubtedly those who wish to exploit the system, they are in the
minority.
he price paid for coffee is generally quoted in US dollars per pound in
weight ($/lb). There is something of a global price for coffee, often
referred to as the C-price. This is the price for commodity coffee being
traded on the New York Stock Exchange. Coffee production is often
discussed in bags. A bag usually weighs 60kg (132lb) if it comes from Africa,
Indonesia or Brazil, or 69kg (152lb) if it comes from Central America. While
bags may be the units of purchase, on the macro scale coffee is usually traded
by the shipping container, which contains around three hundred bags.
Contrary to popular belief, a rather small percentage of coffee is actually
traded on the New York Stock Exchange, but the C-price does provide a sort
of global minimum price for coffee, the minimum a producer would be willing
to accept for his coffee. Prices for particular lots of coffee often have a
differential added to the C-price, a kind of premium. Certain countries have,
historically, been able to get higher differentials for their coffee, including
Costa Rica and Colombia, although this type of trading is still mostly focused
on commodity grade, rather than speciality coffee.
The problem with basing everything on the C-price is that this price is
somewhat fluid. Usually prices are determined by supply and demand, and to
some extent this is true of the C-price. As global demand increased at the end
of the 2000s, the market saw an increase in price and coffee supply began to
look scarce. This produced one of the highest spikes in the price of coffee,
reaching above $3.00/lb in 2010.
This price wasn’t simply about supply and demand, however, it was also
influenced by other factors, not least the influx of cash into the industry from
traders and hedge funds who saw an opportunity to make money. This
produced a volatile market, the like of which had never really been seen
before. From that spike, prices steadily declined again to levels that can be
considered unsustainable for profit.
Coffee bags being loaded on to ships at the port of Santos, Brazil, in 1937. Nowadays coffee is
usually transported in shipping containers, which hold around three hundred bags each.
The C-price for coffee does not reflect the cost of production, and as such
producers may end up in a position where they lose money growing coffee.
There have been a number of reactions to this problem and the most
successful has been the Fair Trade movement, although there are many other
sustainable coffee certification schemes, including those of the Organic
Trade Association and the Rainforest Alliance (see box).
FAIR TRADE
There remains some confusion about exactly how Fair Trade works, although
it has undoubtedly become a successful tool to help those who wish to
purchase coffee with a clear conscience. Many people presume that the
promises of Fair Trade are far wider reaching than they actually are, and that
any coffee could (in theory) be certified as Fair Trade. This is not the case.
And to make matters worse, it is easy for detractors to allege that the farmer
is not getting the premium because of the complex nature of financial
transactions within the coffee industry.
Fair Trade guarantees to pay a base price that it considers sustainable, or a
$0.05/lb premium above the C-price if the market rises above Fair Trade’s
base price. Fair Trade’s model is designed only to work with cooperatives of
coffee growers, and as such cannot certify single estates that produce coffee.
Critics complain about a lack of traceability or true guarantee that the money
definitely goes to the producers, and isn’t diverted through corruption.
Others criticize the model for providing no incentive to farmers to increase
the quality of their coffee. This has encouraged many in the speciality coffee
industry to change the way they source their coffee, moving away from the
commodity model, where coffee is bought at a price determined by global
supply and demand and little regard is given to its provenance or quality.
THE SPECIALITY COFFEE INDUSTRY
A number of different terms are used to describe the various ways in which
speciality roasters are buying their coffee and their relationships with the
growers.
Relationship Coffee is used to describe an ongoing relationship between
producer and roaster. There is usually a dialogue and collaboration to work
towards better quality coffee and more sustainable pricing. For this
arrangement to have the desired positive impact, the roaster would have to be
buying the coffee in sufficient quantity.
Direct Trade is a term that has arisen more recently, where roasters wish to
communicate that they bought the coffee directly from the producer, rather
than from an importer, an exporter or another third party. The problem with
this message is that it plays down the important role of importers and
exporters in the coffee industry, potentially unfairly portraying them as
middlemen simply taking a slice of the producer’s earnings. To be viable, this
model also requires the roaster to buy enough coffee to make an impact.
Fairly Traded may refer to a purchase where there has been good
transparency and traceability and high prices have been paid. There is no
certification to validate the ethics of the purchase, but those involved are
generally trying to do good with their trading. Third parties may be involved
but are considered to have added value. This isn’t a very commonly used
term, except in situations where a customer asks if a particular coffee is Fair
Trade.
The idea behind all these buying models is for roasters to try to buy more
traceably, to remove unnecessary middlemen from the supply chain, and to
pay prices that incentivize the production of higher quality coffee. However,
these terms and ideas are not without their critics. Without third-party
certification it can be difficult to ascertain whether or not a roaster is actually
buying the way they say they are. Some roasters may buy coffees that have
been kept traceable by importers and brokers, and claim this as a direct trade
or relationship coffee.
There are no guarantees of a long-term relationship for the producers
either, with some coffee buyers simply chasing the best lots of coffee they can
each year. However, at least they are paying handsomely for it. This type of
approach makes long-term investment in quality difficult and it should also
be noted that some middlemen provide a valuable service, especially to those
who are working on a smaller scale. The logistics of moving coffee around the
world require a level of specialization and skill that many small roasters
simply do not have.
ADVICE TO CONSUMERS
When buying coffee, it is difficult for consumers to ascertain how ethically
sourced a particular coffee really is. Some speciality roasters have now
developed buying programmes certified by third parties, but most have not. It
is fairly safe to presume that if the coffee has been kept traceable, has the
producer’s name(s) on it, or at least the name of the farm, cooperative or
factory, then a better price has been paid. The level of transparency you
should expect will vary country by country, and is covered in more detail in
each of the sections on the producing countries. If you find a roaster whose
coffee you like, you should be able to ask them for more information about
how they source it. Most are more than happy to share this information, and
are often extremely proud of the work they do.
AUCTION COFFEES
There has been a slow and steady increase in coffees that are sold through internet auction.
The typical format for this involves holding a competition in a producing country wherein
farmers can submit small lots of their best coffee. These are graded and ranked by juries of
coffee tasters, usually a local jury for the first round and then an international cadre of coffee
buyers will fly in for the final round of tasting. The very best coffees are sold at auction and
generally achieve very high prices, especially the winning lot. Most auctions display the price
paid for the coffee online, allowing full traceability behind the whole process.
This idea has also been embraced by a small number of coffee-producing estates that have
managed to build up a brand based on the quality of their coffee. Once they have sufficient
interest from international buyers they can make an auction work. This idea was pioneered
by a farm in Panama called Hacienda La Esmeralda, a farm that had previously set records
for the huge prices paid for its competition-winning coffees.
Harvested coffee cherries are sorted and cleaned to remove unripe and overripe fruit as well as
leaves, soil and twigs. This is often done by hand, using a sieve to winnow away unwanted
materials.
T
A SHORT HISTORY OF COFFEE DRINKING
This book discusses the history of coffee cultivation in producing countries around the world,
but it is also important to consider the growth in demand that went alongside it. Coffee is a truly
global beverage, and it is common to hear the claim that it is the second most popular drink in
the world after water. While there’s no evidence to support this, the ubiquity of coffee in one
form or another makes it plausible.
he origins of coffee drinking are similarly vague, with very little evidence
to support it. While there is some evidence of the fruit of the coffee plant
being eaten in Ethiopia early on, balled up with animal fat as an
invigorating trail snack, we are missing a key piece of the puzzle: we have no
idea who decided to take the seed of the fruit, roast it, grind it to a powder,
steep that powder in hot water and drink the resulting concoction. It’s an
astonishing leap, and a mystery that will probably never be solved.
There is evidence of coffee drinking in the late 15th century, but little to
back up the anecdote that the first coffee house was Kiva Han, opened in 1475
in Constantinople. If it’s true, the coffee would have been grown in Yemen,
and we know that consumption did spread into the region. Coffee quickly
become entwined with political and religious thought, and coffee houses
were banned in Mecca in 1511 and in Cairo in 1532. In both cases, popular
demand won and these bans were soon lifted.
Cafés serving Italian-style coffee were a novelty in 1950s London. With coffee enjoying a
resurgence of popularity in recent years, interest in coffee shops and how to make the perfect
brew has increased again.
The first coffee houses opened in Europe in the mid 1600s, and coffee soon replaced beer and
wine as the breakfast drink of choice. In the New World, the popularity of coffee surged after the
Boston Tea Party in 1773, when drinking coffee became a patriotic act.
COFFEE REACHES EUROPE AND BEYOND
Coffee drinking wouldn’t spread to Europe until the 1600s and coffee
consumption, for medicinal purposes rather than for pleasure, predates
coffee houses in Europe. Coffee would have been traded through Venice in
the early 1600s, but a coffee house didn’t open there until 1645. The first
coffee house in London opened in 1652 and began a hundred-year love affair
between the drink and the city. Coffee unquestionably inspired culture, art,
trade and politics and left a lasting impact on the city itself.
In France, it was the influence of fashion that spread coffee drinking.
Coffee had been gifted to the court of Louis XIV, and its growing popularity
there spread the habit of coffee drinking into Paris.
Vienna was another city that would develop a rich café culture in the late
1600s. The story of the first café in Vienna, the Blue Bottle, using coffee
beans left behind by the Ottomans fleeing after the failed siege of Vienna in
1683, is charming but probably not true; recent evidence suggests the first
café there opened in 1685.
One key moment in the spread of coffee drinking and coffee culture
actually revolved around tea. The Boston Tea Party in 1773, when American
colonists protested against British oppression by attacking merchant ships in
Boston Harbour and throwing chests of tea overboard, was not just an
important rejection of the British Empire, but also marked the moment that
coffee became a patriotic drink in the United States. A rapidly growing
population meant a rapidly growing market and made the US increasingly
influential in the coffee industry in the years to come.
CHANGE THROUGH INNOVATION
The US was also where key innovations came from, that allowed coffee to be
an affordable staple in every home around the world. In 1900 a company
called Hill Bros. began packing coffee into vacuum-sealed cans. Extending
the shelf life this way meant fewer households would have to roast their own
coffee, but made business more difficult for small local roasting companies.
A year later a Japanese chemist named Satori Kato patented his process
for producing instant, or soluble, coffee. Until very recently he was thought to
have been the first to produce it, but recent discoveries now credit the
invention to David Strang in New Zealand in 1890. The process elevated
convenience above quality, but it made coffee drinking easier for many, if not
necessarily cheaper. Today instant coffee is still incredibly popular around
the world.
In Europe, key innovations focused more on the café than coffee at home.
There are various claimants to the first espresso machine, but patents using
these principles began to be filed from 1884 onwards. Luigi Bezzera would
patent his machine in 1901, and he is often credited as having invented the
espresso machine.
These machines allowed café operators to make lots of cups of coffee, of a
similar size and strength to filter coffee, very quickly. The great leap forward
in espresso technology would come with the use of a large spring to produce
very high pressures. The claim to this innovation belongs to Achille Gaggia in
1945, though how he acquired the patent remains a little murky. This highpressure
brewing produced espresso as we know it today: a small,
concentrated cup of coffee topped with a deep brown foam, called crema.
The espresso bar boom that happened in many cities in the 1950s and
1960s was as much cultural as it was about the consumption of coffee.
However, from a technical perspective, espresso brewing was perfect for
cafés because one machine could now rapidly produce a whole range of
drinks.
COFFEE TODAY
It would be impossible to write about modern coffee drinking without
discussing Starbucks. The company’s roots were in roasting and selling coffee
beans from a shop in Seattle, but it was transformed by Howard Schultz into
the global phenomenon that we know today. Schultz claimed to be inspired
by his travels to Italy, though the modern Starbucks experience would be
unrecognizable to a native Italian. Starbucks, and businesses like it,
undoubtedly paved the way for the growth in speciality coffee that we see
around the world today. Starbucks made coffee an even more popular out-ofhome
drink and raised expectations for what a cup of coffee could cost. The
company remains hugely influential, and is pioneering coffee drinking in new
markets like China.
What defines modern speciality coffee is the focus on where coffee comes
from, and how that impacts its taste. This focus has influenced how cafés
brew, sell and serve cups of coffee. Coffee drinking has evolved from simple
morning stimulation into an expression of self, an expression of values or of
conscious consumption. Coffee drinking is now woven into a myriad of
different cultures around the world.
Today, there is a coffee shop for every taste, from the mass-market purveyors of sweet, creamy
coffee-flavoured drinks to the craft coffee shops serving single-estate pour-overs.
A
COFFEE ROASTING
Roasting is one of the most fascinating aspects of the coffee industry. It takes the green coffee
seed, which has almost no flavour beyond a quite unpleasant vegetal taste, and transforms it
into an incredibly aromatic, astonishingly complex coffee bean. The smell of freshly roasted
coffee is evocative, intoxicating and all-round delicious. This section deals with roasting on a
commercial scale. See Home Roasting for information about home roasting.
huge amount of research has gone into the commercial roasting of
relatively low-quality coffee, most of it to do with the efficiency of the
process and the methods used in producing instant soluble coffee. As
these coffees aren’t particularly interesting or flavoursome, very little work
has been done on the development of sweetness, or the retention of flavours
unique to a particular coffee’s terroir or variety.
Speciality roasters around the world are, by and large, self trained and
many have learned their trade through careful trial and error. Each roasting
company has its own style and aesthetic, or roast philosophy. They may well
understand how to replicate what they enjoy drinking, but they do not
sufficiently understand the whole process to manipulate it to produce a
variety of different roast styles. That is not to say that delicious and wellroasted
coffee is rare: it can be found in almost every country in the world. If
anything, it suggests that the future is bright for quality coffee roasting, as
there is still a lot to explore and develop that can only lead to better roasting
techniques.
FAST OR SLOW, LIGHT OR DARK?
To simplify matters, it can be said that the roast of a coffee is a product of the
final colour of the coffee bean (light or dark), and the time it took to get to
that colour (fast or slow). To simply describe a coffee as a light roast is not
enough, as the roast could have been relatively fast or it could have been quite
slow. The flavour will be quite different between the fast and the slow, even
though the bean may look the same.
A whole host of different chemical reactions occur during roasting, and
several of them reduce the weight of the coffee, not least of course the
evaporation of moisture. Slow roasting (14–20 minutes) will result in a
greater loss of weight (about 16–18 per cent) than faster roasting, which can
be achieved in as little as ninety seconds. Slow roasting will also achieve a
better, if more expensive cup of coffee.
The roasting process can be controlled to determine three key aspects of
how the coffee will taste: acidity, sweetness and bitterness. It is generally
agreed that the longer a coffee is roasted, the less acidity it will have in the
end. Conversely, bitterness will slowly increase the longer a coffee is roasted,
and will definitely increase the darker a coffee is roasted.
Sweetness is presented as a bell curve, peaking in between the highs of
acidity and bitterness. A good roaster can manipulate where a coffee may be
sweetest in relation to its roast degree, producing either a very sweet, yet also
quite acidic coffee, or a very sweet, but more muted cup by using a different
roast profile. However, adjusting a roast profile can never improve a poorquality
coffee.
The roasting process affects acidity, sweetness and bitterness of bean flavours. Roasters seek to
balance these three aspects through carefully controlled use of heat and timing.
THE STAGES OF ROASTING
There are a number of key stages during roasting, and the speed at which a particular coffee
passes through each of these stages is described as its roast profile. Many coffee roasters track
their roast profiles carefully so they can replicate them to within very tight boundaries of
temperature and time.
STAGE 1:
DRYING
Raw coffee contains 7–11 per cent water by weight, spread evenly through the dense structure of
the bean. Coffee won’t turn brown in the presence of water, and in fact this is true of browning
reactions when cooking anything.
After the coffee is loaded into a roaster, it takes some time for the beans to absorb sufficient heat
to start evaporating the water and the drying process therefore requires a large amount of heat
and energy. The coffee barely changes in look or smell for these first few minutes of roasting.
STAGE 2:
YELLOWING
Once the water has been driven out of the beans, the first browning reactions can begin. At this
stage, the coffee beans are still very dense and have an aroma of basmati rice, and a little
breadiness. Soon the beans start to expand and their thin papery skins, the chaff, flakes off. The
chaff is separated from the roasting beans by the air flowing through the roaster and is collected
and safely removed to prevent the risk of fire.
These first two roasting stages are very important: if the coffee is not properly dried then it will
not roast evenly during the next stages and while the outside of each bean is well roasted the
inside will essentially be undercooked. This coffee will taste unpleasant, with a combination of
bitterness from the outside, and a sour and grassy flavour coming from the underdeveloped
inside. Slowing the roasting process after this will not fix the problem as different parts of the
coffee will always be progressing at different rates.
STAGE 3:
FIRST CRACK
Once the browning reactions begin to gather speed there is a build-up of gases (mostly carbon
dioxide) and water vapour inside the bean. Once the pressure gets too great, the bean will break
open, making a popping noise and nearly doubling in volume. From this point onwards, the
familiar coffee flavours develop, and the roaster can choose to end the roast at any point.
A roaster will see a decrease in the rate at which the coffee is increasing in temperature at this
point, despite the fact that they may be adding a similar amount of heat. Failure to add enough
heat can stall the roast and ‘bake’ the coffee, resulting in poor cup quality.
STAGE 4:
ROAST DEVELOPMENT
After the first crack stage, the beans will be much smoother on the surface but not entirely so.
This stage of the roast determines the end colour of the beans and the roast degree. Here the
roaster can determine the balance of acidity and bitterness in the end product as the acids in the
beans are rapidly degrading while the level of bitterness is increasing as the roast continues.
STAGE 5:
SECOND CRACK
At this point the beans begin to crack again, but with a quieter and snappier sound. Once you
reach second crack, the oils will be driven to the surface of the coffee bean. Much of the acidity
will have been lost and a new kind of flavour is developing, often referred to as the generic ‘roast’
flavour. This flavour doesn’t depend on the kind of coffee used as it is a result of essentially
charring or burning the coffee, rather than working with its intrinsic flavours.
Progressing a roast past the second crack usually results in the beans catching fire which is
extremely dangerous, especially with large commercial roasting machines.
There are terms used in coffee roasting such as ‘French Roast’ or ‘Italian Roast’. Both of these
terms are used to indicate very dark roasts, typically high in body and bitterness but with many of
the characteristics of the raw coffees lost. While many enjoy coffees roasted in this manner, these
kinds of roasts are not suitable for exploring the flavours and characteristics of high-quality
coffees from different origins.
Coffee vendors have plied their aromatic trade for centuries, as depicted in this 18th-century
engraving of a Parisian street hawker by Anne Claude Comte de Caylus.
SUGARS IN COFFEE
Many people talk about sweetness when describing a coffee and it is
important to understand what happens to the naturally occurring sugars
during roasting.
Green coffee can contain reasonable quantities of simple sugars. Not all
sugars are necessarily sweet to the taste, though simple sugars usually are.
Sugars are quite reactive at roasting temperatures and, once the water has
evaporated out of the bean, the sugars can begin to react to the heat in
different ways. Some go through caramelization reactions, creating the
caramel notes found in certain coffees. It should be noted, however, that the
sugars that react this way become less sweet, and will eventually start to add
bitterness. Other sugars react with the proteins in the coffee in what are
known as Maillard reactions. This is an umbrella term covering the browning
reactions seen in roasting a piece of meat in the oven, for example, but also
when roasting cocoa or coffee.
By the time coffee has finished the first crack stage, there are few or no
simple sugars left. They will all have been involved in various reactions
resulting in a huge number of aromatic compounds.
ACIDS IN COFFEE
Green coffee contains many different types of acids, some of which are
pleasant to taste and some that are not. Of particular importance to the
roaster are the chlorogenic acids (CGAs). One of the key goals of roasting is to
try to react these unpleasant acids away without creating negative flavours,
or driving off the desirable aromatic components of the coffee. Some other
acids are stable throughout the roasting process, such as quinic acid, which
can add a pleasing, clean finish to a coffee.
AROMATIC COMPOUNDS IN COFFEE
Most of the aromatics in a good cup of coffee are created during roasting
through one of three groups of processes: Maillard reactions, caramelization
and Strecker degradation, another type of chemical reaction involving amino
acids. These are all brought about by the heat during roasting and can result
in the creation of over eight hundred different volatile aromatic compounds
that flavour the cup of coffee. Although more aromatic compounds have been
recorded in coffee than in wine, an individual coffee will only have a selection
of these different volatiles. That said, the smell of freshly roasted coffee is so
complex that all attempts to manufacture a realistic, synthetic version of this
smell have failed.
ROAST PROFILE
Roasters track the temperature of the coffee beans during roasting: by changing how quickly a
roast progresses at different times, the roaster can alter the flavour of the final coffee.
QUENCHING
After roasting, the coffee must be cooled quickly to prevent over roasting or
the development of negative (or ‘baked’) flavours. In small-batch roasting
this is often achieved using a cooling tray, which rapidly draws air through
the coffee to cool it down. With large batches of coffee, air alone is not
effective enough: a mist of water is sprayed on to the coffee, and as it
evaporates and turns to steam, it draws heat out of the beans. Done correctly,
this has no negative effect on cup quality, but the coffee will age a little
quicker. Unfortunately, however, many companies add more water than
necessary to increase the weight of the beans and add monetary value to the
batch. This is both unethical and bad for cup quality.
TYPES OF COFFEE ROASTERS
Coffee tends to be roasted close to where it will be consumed, as green coffee is more stable
than roasted beans – coffee is at its best when used within a month of roasting. Roasting
methods vary, but the two most commonly used types of machines are drum roasters and hotair
or fluid-bed roasters.
DRUM ROASTERS
Invented around the beginning of the 20th century, drum roasters are popular with craft
roasters, as they are able to roast at slower speeds. A metal drum rotates above a flame,
moving the coffee beans constantly during the process to aid even roasting.
The roaster can control the gas flame, and therefore the heat being applied to the drum, and
can also control the flow of air through the drum, which dictates how quickly the heat is
transferred to the coffee.
Drum roasters come in a range of different sizes, the largest being able to roast up to around
500kg (1,100lb) per batch.
FLUID-BED ROASTERS
Invented by Michael Sivetz in the 1970s, fluid-bed roasters tumble and heat the beans by
pumping jets of hot air through the machine. Roast times are significantly shorter than in a
drum roaster so the beans tend to swell a little more as a result. The higher volume of air
conducts heat more quickly into the coffee, which means that this roasting process is faster
than drum roasting.
TANGENTIAL ROASTERS
Built by a company called Probat, tangential roasters are similar to large drum roasters but
they have internal shovels to mix the coffee evenly during heating, which allows a bigger
batch to be roasted effectively. The capacity isn’t much larger than a very large drum roaster,
but this type is able to achieve faster roasting speeds.
CENTRIFUGAL ROASTERS
Centrifugal roasters allow very large quantities of coffee to be roasted incredibly quickly. The
coffee is placed inside a large inverted cone, which spins to draw the coffee beans up the
walls as they are heated. The beans are then flung back down into the middle of the cone to
repeat their journey. Roast times can be as low ninety seconds using machines like this.
Roasting at very high speeds minimizes weight loss and increases the amount of coffee that
can be extracted from the beans, which is important when making instant soluble coffee.
Roasting at these speeds is not designed to produce the best possible cup.
M
BUYING AND STORING COFFEE
There is no foolproof way to ensure you get great coffee every time you buy a bag. However,
there are a few points to remember, starting from when you are choosing where to shop to how
you store the coffee you have bought, which will increase your chances of ending up with a very
good cup of coffee.
ost people buy their coffee in a supermarket but there are many reasons
to avoid this practice, not least because of the freshness of the coffee on
offer. However, perhaps the best reason to avoid buying coffee from a
supermarket is because of the sheer pleasure to be found in buying from a
specialist shop. Small shops offer the opportunity to build a relationship with
someone passionate and knowledgeable about coffee. It helps when choosing
if you can get some advice and even try a coffee before you buy. Dealing with
someone directly means you have a better chance of buying a coffee you’ll
really enjoy, especially if you let them know what you enjoyed previously.
STRENGTH GUIDES
You’ll often see a strength guide on the side of a bag of coffee, especially those
on offer in supermarkets. These have nothing to do with strength, which is
really about how much coffee you use to brew a cup, but more to do with the
level of bitterness you can expect to find in that particular coffee. This is
usually determined by the roast level of the coffee – light-roasted coffees
usually have lower strength ratings and dark-roasted coffees have higher
strength ratings. I would avoid coffees that come with a strength rating
because, more often than not (and there are exceptions), the quality and
flavour of the coffee have not been the primary concern of the producer.
TRACEABILITY
There are thousands of different coffee roasters, and hundreds of thousands
of different roasts of coffee from different farms. Not all of them can be good,
and variations in price and the way they are marketed can make buying fairly
confusing. This book aims to explain where coffee comes from, and how and
why its origin can affect its flavour. The best advice I can give is to buy as
traceable a coffee as possible.
In many cases it is possible to find a coffee from one specific farm, or one
cooperative. However, that level of traceability is not possible in every coffeeproducing
country in the world. Each of the sections on the different
countries offers an idea of how traceable the coffees from that country can be.
Much of Latin America is able to produce coffees that are traceable down to a
particular small farm because most of the coffee there is grown on small
private estates. In other countries small-scale land ownership by farmers is
unusual, or the trade regulations of a country may interfere with the export
process, making traceability difficult.
To keep a batch of coffee traceable throughout the entire supply chain
adds cost, and this investment can only be returned if the coffee is sold for a
higher price. This means it is only worth keeping high-quality coffees
traceable, as doing so with low-quality lots would make them uncompetitive
in the market place. In an industry plagued by ethical concerns, and dogged
by an image of exploitation of the Third World, knowing exactly where a
coffee comes from is a powerful piece of information. As communication
technology, especially around social media, spreads and develops we’re likely
to see increased interaction between those who produce the coffee and those
who ultimately drink it.
The best cup of coffee begins with a well-chosen bean. Choose freshly roasted beans from a
specialist shop; they should also be able to advise you about the coffee’s origins.
GOLDEN RULES FOR FRESH COFFEE
Everyone agrees fresh-roasted coffee is better, so I would make the following
1
2
3
4
1
2
3
4
recommendations:
Buy coffee that has a clear roast date on the packaging
Try to buy within two weeks of roasting
Buy only enough coffee for a couple of weeks at a time
Buy whole beans and grind them yourself at home
STORING COFFEE AT HOME
Once the staling process begins, there is very little that can be done to prevent it
continuing. As long as you are buying fresh coffee and using it relatively quickly the impact
on your cup of coffee should be minor. However, there are ways to store coffee at home that
will keep it in the best possible condition.
Keep the coffee airtight If the bag can be resealed, then make sure it is kept that way. If
the bag can’t be completely resealed, transfer the coffee to an airtight container, such as
a plastic tub with a lid or one designed specifically for storing coffee.
Keep the coffee in a dark place Light rapidly accelerates the staling of coffee, especially
sunlight. If you keep your coffee in a clear container, place it inside a cardboard box.
Don’t put it in the refrigerator This is a common practice, but it does not extend the life
of coffee, and you can get cross-contamination of aromas if you have something
particularly fragrant in the refrigerator with the coffee.
Keep it dry If you can’t keep it in an airtight container, then at least avoid placing it in a
humid environment.
If you need to store some coffee for a long period of time, place it in the freezer to slow
down the staling process. It is important to package it in an airtight container first. When you
want to use the coffee, defrost it thoroughly first, but be sure only to defrost the amount you
are planning to use straight away.
Beans last longest when stored in an airtight container, in a dry, dark place.
FRESHNESS
Over the years most people have been conditioned not to think of coffee as
being a fresh food product. For some it is because instant coffee is what they
associate with coffee and that doesn’t really ever go stale. Coffee sold in
supermarkets will often have a best-before date that is 12–24 months after
the date it was roasted. This is because coffee is considered shelf stable and it
is safe to consume two years after roasting, but it will taste pretty terrible at
that point. It is more convenient for all involved if coffee isn’t treated like a
fresh product, with the exception of the ultimate consumer.
The speciality coffee industry has failed to make a real impact because
there is no strong agreement on how quickly coffee goes stale, and at what
point it will have passed its best-before date.
I would recommend buying coffee that clearly shows the date of roasting
on the label. Many coffee roasters now suggest that the coffee is used within a
month of roasting and I would follow this advice. The coffee is at its most
vibrant during the first few weeks and after this an increasingly unpleasant
stale flavour begins to develop. Many specialist shops stock bags of coffee
that were recently roasted and delivered, and buying online direct from the
roaster usually ensures your coffee is delivered to your home within a few
days of roasting.
STALING
When coffee goes stale there are two main changes occurring. The first is the
slow but steady loss of aromatic compounds, the compounds that give coffee
its flavour and smell. As they are volatile, these compounds slowly leach from
the coffee so the older it is the less interesting it will taste.
The second change is the staling caused by oxygen and moisture. This type
of staling creates new flavours, often relatively unpleasant ones. As the coffee
changes it will develop a generic stale taste, and much of its original character
will be lost. Stale coffees tend to taste flat, woody and vaguely of cardboard.
The darker the coffee has been roasted, the faster it will go stale. This is
because the roasting process makes the coffee bean more porous, so it is
easier for oxygen and moisture to penetrate and start the staling reactions.
‘RESTING’ COFFEE
To further confuse the issue, it is quite common to see recommendations for
‘resting’ the coffee before brewing it. When coffee is roasted the chemical
reactions that cause the beans to brown produce large volumes of carbon
dioxide. Much of this gas remains trapped inside the beans, and slowly
leaches out over time. The coffee will de-gas quite quickly in the first few days
and then the rate will slow. Adding hot water to coffee will cause the gas to be
released very quickly, which is why bubbles often form when coffee is
brewing.
Espresso is a brew method that takes place under a great deal of pressure,
and when there is a lot of carbon dioxide in the coffee it makes the brewing
process a little more difficult and can prevent the proper extraction of
flavour. Many coffee shops let the coffee de-gas for anything from five to
twenty days before using it to help increase their consistency when brewing.
At home, I would recommend leaving a gap of at least three to four days
between roasting and brewing, but waiting too long may mean that the coffee
starts to stale by the time you finish the bag. With filter-coffee brewing this is
not as important, but I do think coffees taste better after two to three days
than immediately after roasting.
PACKAGING COFFEE
Coffee roasters have three main choices for packaging their coffee. They will
make this decision based not only on the preservation of the coffee, but also
on the environmental impact, cost and look of the packaging.
UNSEALED CRAFT PACKAGING
The coffee is packed into craft paper bags with a simple greaseproof lining to
prevent any leaching of the oil from the coffee. While the bag may be rolled
up at the point of sale, the coffee is still exposed to oxygen and will stale
quickly. Many roasters who use this kind of packaging will emphasize the
importance of freshness, often suggesting the coffee be used within seven to
ten days. When they retail the coffee they must be sure that the coffee on the
shelves is as fresh as possible, though this can lead to some undesirable
wastage. This type of packaging is sometimes recyclable and is generally
considered to have the least impact on the environment.
SEALED FOIL PACKAGING
Triple-ply foil bags are sealed as soon as the coffee is packed to prevent fresh
air getting in, but have a valve to allow the carbon dioxide to escape. Coffee
will become stale slower inside these bags, but once opened the rate of staling
will increase. While packaging like this is not currently recyclable, many
speciality roasters choose this option as they consider it the best compromise
in terms of cost, environmental impact and freshness.
Triple-ply foil bags are common in the speciality coffee industry as they reduce staling until the
package is opened.
GAS-FLUSHED SEALED FOIL PACKAGING
This is the same as the above, with one crucial difference. During the sealing
process, a machine flushes the bag of coffee with an inert gas such as nitrogen
to expel any oxygen from the bag, as oxygen causes staling to occur. This type
of packaging slows staling down the most, although once the bag is opened
the staling process will start. Despite this being the most effective way to
package coffee, it is not widely used due to the additional costs of equipment,
process time and the inert gas.
Each brew is affected by the origin, preparation and roasting of the beans, which create its
distinct flavour.
T
TASTING AND DESCRIBING COFFEE
Coffee drinking is often tied into a ritual, a specific part of our day. We might drink a cup of
coffee first thing in the morning, or as a break from work. Our attention is usually focused on the
people we are with, or the newspaper we are reading over breakfast. Few people really
concentrate on tasting the coffee they drink, but when they start to notice it, their appreciation
increases rapidly.
he process of tasting happens in two different places – in our mouths and
in our noses – and it is helpful to think about these two parts of the process
separately when learning to taste and talk about a coffee. The first part of
the process occurs on the tongue and it is here we detect the relatively basic
tastes of acidity, sweetness, bitterness, saltiness and savouriness. When
reading the description of a coffee, we might be attracted to the flavours
described, such as chocolate, berries or caramel. These flavours are actually
detected the same way as smells – not in the mouth but by the olfactory bulb
in the nasal cavity.
For most people these two separate experiences are completely
intertwined, and the separation of taste and smell is extremely difficult. It
gets easier if you try to focus on one particular aspect at a time, rather than
taking the extremely complex taste experience in one go.
PROFESSIONAL TASTERS
Before it reaches the final consumer, a coffee will have been tasted a number
of different times along its journey through the coffee industry. Each time it
is tasted, the taster might be looking for something different. It might first be
tasted early on to detect any presence of defect. It will then be tasted by a
roaster as part of the purchasing process, or by a jury ranking coffees for an
auction of the best lots from a particular place. It will be tasted by the roaster
again as part of their quality control to make sure that the roasting process
was done correctly and then it may be tasted by a café owner selecting the
range they wish to stock. Finally it will be tasted, and hopefully enjoyed, by
the consumer.
The coffee industry uses a pretty standardized practice called ‘cupping’ to
taste coffee. The idea behind cupping is to avoid any impact on flavour from
the brewing process, and to treat all coffees being tasted as equally as
possible. For that reason, a very simple brewing process is used, as bad
brewing can easily change the flavour of a coffee quite dramatically.
A fixed amount of coffee is weighed for each bowl. It is ground at a fixed
setting and then a specific amount of water, just off the boil, is added. For
example, for 12g (½ oz) of coffee, 200ml (7fl oz) of water might be added. The
coffee is then left to steep for four minutes.
To end the brewing process, the layer of floating grounds on top of the
bowl, called the crust, is stirred. This causes almost all of the coffee grounds
to fall to the bottom of the bowl where they stop extracting. Any grounds and
foam that remain on top can be skimmed off and the coffee is ready to taste.
Once the coffee has cooled to a safe temperature, tasting begins. Coffee
tasters use a spoon to get a small sample of coffee, which they then
aggressively slurp from the spoon. This slurping process aerates the coffee
and sprays it across the palate. It is not essential to tasting, but does make
tasting a little easier.
Before coffee reaches the consumer, professional tasters will grade and rank the coffee. Roasters
and cafe owners will also taste the brew to check for flavour and quality control.
TASTING TRAITS
As coffee tasters work, they may record their notes on a score sheet. Different processes require
different score sheets but in almost all cases the following attributes are being assessed:
SWEETNESS
How much sweetness does the coffee have? This is a very desirable trait in coffee, and generally
the more the better.
ACIDITY
How acidic is the coffee? And how pleasant is this acidity? If there is a lot of unpleasant acidity,
the coffee will be described as sour. A lot of pleasing acidity, however, gives the coffee a
crispness or juiciness.
For many people learning to taste coffee, acidity is a difficult attribute. They may not have
expected coffee to have much acidity, and certainly would not have considered this a positive
quality in the past. Apples can be a great example of positive acidity: in an apple, high acidity can
be wonderful, adding a refreshing quality.
Coffee professionals tend to develop a preference for high acidity in coffees, much as beer
aficionados may develop a preference for very hoppy beers. This can result in a difference of
opinion between industry and consumer. In the case of coffee, unusual flavours – such as fruit
notes – are determined by the density of the coffee. Generally, denser coffees are also more
acidic, so coffee tasters learn to associate high acidity with quality and interesting flavours.
MOUTHFEEL
Does the coffee have a light, delicate, tea-like mouthfeel or is it more of a rich, creamy, heavy
cup? Again, more is not necessarily better. Low-quality coffees often have quite a heavy
mouthfeel, coupled with low acidity, but are not always pleasant to drink.
BALANCE
This is one of the most difficult aspects of a coffee to assess. A myriad of tastes and flavours occur
in a mouthful of great coffee but are they harmonious? Is it like a well-mixed piece of music, or is
one element too loud? Does one aspect dominate the cup?
FLAVOUR
This is not just about describing the different flavours and aromas of a particular coffee, but also
about how pleasant the taster finds them. Many new tasters find this the most frustrating aspect
of coffee tasting. Each of the coffees they taste are clearly different but the language to describe
them remains elusive.
A professional coffee taster will often use a score sheet similar to the one below to rate the
different properties of a brew.
1
2
3
4
5
6
7
HOW TO TASTE AT HOME
How does a professional coffee taster develop his skills so rapidly compared to a consumer? It
isn’t through the use of cupping bowls or spoons. Neither is it by using score sheets, or having
large amounts of data about where the coffee is from. It is through regular opportunities for
comparative tasting. Where the coffee taster gains a quiet advantage is by going through a
process of focused, conscious tasting and this can also be done at home very easily.
Buy two very different coffees. It is a good idea to ask your local coffee roaster or speciality
shop for guidance. The comparative part of tasting is vitally important. If you taste just one
coffee at a time you have nothing to compare it with and you are basing your judgements on
your memories of previous coffees, which are likely to be patchy, flawed and inaccurate.
Buy two small French presses, as small as you can get, and brew two small cups of coffee. You
could obviously do this with bigger presses and bigger cups, but this way will prevent excess
waste or drinking too much coffee.
Let the coffee cool a little bit. It is much easier to discern flavours in warm rather than hot
coffee.
Start to taste them alternately. Take a couple of sips of one coffee before moving on to the
other. Start to think about how the coffees taste compared to each other. Without a point of
reference, this is incredibly difficult.
Focus on textures first, thinking about the mouthfeel of the two coffees. Does one feel heavier
than the other? Is one sweeter than the other? Does one have a cleaner acidity than the other?
Don’t read the labels as you taste, instead note down some words about each coffee.
Don’t worry about flavours. Flavours are the most intimidating part of tasting, as well as the
most frustrating. Roasters use flavours not only to describe particular notes – such as ‘nutty’ or
‘floral’ – but also to convey a wide range of sensations. For example, describing a coffee as
having ‘ripe apple’ notes also communicates expectations of sweetness and acidity. If you do
identify individual flavours, note them down. If not, then don’t worry. Any words or phrases
that describe what you are tasting qualify as being useful, whether they are random words or
specific flavours.
When you have finished, compare what you have written down with the roaster’s description
on the packet. Can you see now what they are trying to communicate about the coffee? Often
on reading the label your frustration will be relieved as you find the word to describe what you
tasted. It can suddenly seem so obvious and this is part of building a coffee-specific
vocabulary of flavours. Describing coffee gets easier and easier, though this is something even
industry veterans still work on.
The skill of coffee tasting can be developed by comparative tasting. Choose and prepare a brew
of two different coffees, then try comparing texture, taste, acidity and flavour.
T
GRINDING COFFEE
The smell of freshly ground coffee is evocative, heady and indescribable, and in some ways it is
worth paying for a coffee grinder for this alone. However, grinding your own beans at home will
also make an enormous difference to the quality of your cup, compared to buying pre-ground
coffee.
he aim of grinding the beans before brewing is to expose enough surface
area to extract enough of the flavour locked inside the beans to make a
good cup of coffee. If you brewed whole beans you’d end up with a very
weak brew. The finer the beans are ground, the more surface area is exposed
and, in theory, the faster the coffee could be brewed because the water has
more access to it. This is important when considering how finely the coffee
should be ground for different brew methods. The fact that the size of the
coffee grounds changes the speed at which the coffee brews also makes it very
important that we try to make all the pieces the same size when grinding
coffee. Finally, grinding the coffee exposes more of it to the air, which means
that the coffee will go stale more quickly, so it should ideally only be ground
just before brewing.
There are two main types of coffee grinder available for domestic use:
THE (WHIRLY) BLADE GRINDER
These are common and inexpensive electric grinders. They have a metal
blade attached to a motor that spins and smashes the coffee to pieces. The
biggest problem is that this smashing action produces some very fine powder
and some very large pieces. When you brew coffee ground like this, the tiny
pieces will quickly add a bitter flavour to the brew, while the larger pieces will
add an unpleasant sourness. This uneven brew won’t be very enjoyable.
Beans ground in a blade grinder (left) will be of a more uneven size and make a less palatable
brew than those milled from a burr grinder (right), which has two cutting discs.
THE BURR GRINDER
These are increasingly common and available as electric or manual models.
They have two cutting discs, called burrs, facing each other and you can
adjust the distance between them to change the size of the grounds of coffee
produced. Because the coffee grounds can’t escape until they have been cut
down to the size of the gap between the burrs, the resulting grounds are very
even in size. Burr grinders produce even pieces and an adjustable range of
sizes, so they are ideal for brewing great coffee.
Burr grinders are more expensive than blade grinders but the manual
models are relatively cheap and easy to use. If you enjoy coffee, it will prove
to be an invaluable investment, especially if you are brewing espresso.
However, because grind size is so important in espresso – variations of a few
hundredths of a millimetre make a difference – it is important to buy a burr
grinder designed for espresso with a good motor capable of grinding the
beans very fine. Some grinders can grind for both filter coffee and for
espresso, but most do one or the other.
Different manufacturers use different materials to make the burrs, such as
steel or ceramic. Over time, the cutting teeth on the burrs will start to dull
and the machine will start to mill the coffee rather than cutt it cleanly,
producing a lot of tiny pieces that make the coffee taste flat and bitter. Follow
the manufacturer’s recommendations for how often to change the burrs –
new burrs are a small but worthwhile investment in your coffee-brewing
setup.
Many people who enjoy coffee as a hobby like to upgrade their equipment
from time to time. I would strongly recommend investing in a better grinder
first. More expensive grinders have better motors and cutting burrs capable
of a more uniform grind size. You will make a better cup of coffee with a highend
grinder and a small domestic espresso machine than with a cheap grinder
and a top-of-the-range commercial espresso machine.
A burr grinder will cut beans into evenly sized pieces and can be adjusted to various grind sizes.
They are an ideal investment for making a great brew at home.
DENSITY AND GRIND SIZE
Unfortunately not all coffees should be treated equally in the grinder. Darker
roasts are more brittle in the grinder, and you may need to grind a little
coarser.
Equally, if the coffee is from a much higher altitude than you typically
drink – for example, you’ve been drinking a delicious coffee from Brazil, and
then you switch to a coffee from Kenya – you may need to go finer in your
grinder for the high-grown coffee. Once you’ve made the switch a few times
you can make a well-educated guess when changing coffees, and prevent too
many bad brews.
GRIND SIZE
Communicating grind size is not easy. Terms such as ‘coarse’, ‘medium’ and ‘fine’ aren’t
particularly helpful because they are relative. There is no common setting among grinder
manufacturers either, so setting one grinder to a numerical setting of ‘5’, for example, won’t
replicate the grind of another grinder set to the same setting, even if it is the same model.
Below are some different expressions of grind size, with the accompanying photographs
shown at life size. This should get you close to the perfect grind, then with a little
experimentation each morning you should be able to achieve a much more delicious cup of
coffee very quickly.
I
WATER FOR BREWING
The role of water in the brewing process is absolutely crucial in creating a great cup of coffee.
At first glance the recommendations below may seem somewhat excessive, but making a little
effort with water will bring enormous returns.
f you live in a hard water area, try buying a small bottle of mineral water to
brew a single cup of coffee. Brew another coffee straight afterwards in
exactly the same way, but using regular tap water instead. From seasoned
coffee taster to interested novice, every person who has ever compared the
two has been shocked at the difference in quality.
THE ROLE OF WATER
Water is a vital ingredient in a cup of coffee as it makes up around 90 per cent
by volume of an espresso and 98.5 per cent of a cup of filter coffee. If the
water doesn’t taste good to start with, neither will the cup of coffee in the end.
And if you can taste the chlorine, the resulting cup of coffee will be terrible.
In many cases a simple water filter jug that contains active carbon (such as a
Brita filter) will do a good job of removing negative tastes, but it still might
not produce the perfect water for brewing coffee.
Water acts as a solvent, doing the work of extracting the flavours in the
coffee during the brewing process. This is where the quality of the water plays
a major role, as the hardness and the mineral content can significantly affect
how the coffee brews.
HARDNESS
Water hardness is a measure of how much limescale (calcium carbonate) is
dissolved in the water, and this is determined by the bedrock in the local area.
Heating water causes the limescale to come out of solution and accumulate
over time as a chalky white build up. Those who live in hard water areas
struggle with the frustrations of limescale affecting kettles, showers and
washing machines.
The hardness strongly influences the way the hot water and the ground
coffee interact. Harder water seems to change the rate at which the solubles
in the coffee go into solution, essentially changing the way the coffee brews at
a chemical level. To make broad statement: it seems a small amount of
hardness is desirable, but anything from moderate to hard water does a poor
job of brewing coffee, producing a cup lacking in nuance, sweetness and
complexity. Also, on a practical level, having soft water is very important if
you are using any sort of coffee machine that heats water, such as an espresso
machine or a filter coffee machine. Limescale build up will quickly cause a
machine to malfunction, and many manufacturers will consider the use of
hard water to have invalidated the warranty.
The quality of water used to brew your coffee will affect the taste. Mineral water is ideal but
filtered water will also improve the flavour of your coffee.
MINERAL CONTENT
Aside from a good flavour and just a little hardness, there isn’t too much else
we really want in the water, but a relatively low mineral content is desirable.
Manufacturers of mineral water are required to list the mineral content on
the bottle and it is usually described as the total dissolved solids (TDS), or the
‘dry residue at 180°C’ (365°F).
THE PERFECT WATER
•
•
The Specialty Coffee Association of America (SCAA) publishes suggested
guidelines for the perfect water for coffee brewing. The table below offers a
summary.
If you want to understand the quality of your domestic water supply,
contact your water supply company or look on its website, as most are
obliged to publish data on the content of their water. If you can’t find this
information, buy a water-testing kit from a pet shop (sold to test the water in
fish tanks), which will give you accurate readings of the key elements.
CHOOSING A WATER
All this information may seem a little overwhelming and complex, but it can
be summarized as follows:
If you live in a soft to moderately hard water area, use tap water but filter it
first to improve the taste.
If you live in a moderate to very hard water area, bottled water is the
current best option for brewing coffee. Choose a bottled water close to the
above targets; own-brand supermarket waters tend to be lower in mineral
content compared to the big brand waters. While it is not ideal to
recommend bottled water, if you really wish to get the best out of your
coffee, you must use a water suitable for brewing.
GUIDELINES FOR THE PERFECT WATER FOR COFFEE BREWING
Brewing a good cup of coffee at home is a matter of preference, but an important factor to
understand is the ratio of water to coffee.
A
BREWING BASICS
A key moment in the journey from crop to cup is the process of brewing. All the hard work up
until this point, all the potential and deliciousness locked within the coffee can be lost by bad
brewing. It is upsetting how easy it is to brew coffee badly, but understanding the basic
principles can lead to better results and make the process more enjoyable.
coffee bean is composed mostly of cellulose – it is very similar to wood.
Cellulose cannot be dissolved in water, so this is what makes up most of
the spent grounds we throw away after brewing a cup of coffee. Broadly
speaking, everything else that makes up the coffee bean can be dissolved in
water and can end up in the cup, but not everything that we can get from the
coffee tastes good.
From the 1960s, there has been ongoing research into measuring how
much of the coffee we actually want to extract for the resulting cup to taste
good. If you don’t take enough from the grounds then the cup of coffee will
not only be weak, but it will often also be sour and astringent. This is called
‘underextraction’. And if we take too much from the grounds then the cup of
coffee will taste bitter, harsh and ashy. This is what we call ‘overextraction’.
It is possible to calculate whether we have extracted as much as we want
from the coffee. In the past this was done relatively simply: the grounds were
weighed before brewing, then after brewing the spent grounds were placed in
a low oven until they were completely dry. When they were weighed again,
the difference in weight would indicate how much of the coffee had been
extracted during the brewing process. Now a combination of a specialized
refractometer and smartphone software allows us quickly to calculate how
much has been extracted from the grounds. Generally it is agreed that a good
cup of coffee contains 18–22 per cent by weight of the ground coffee used to
brew it. The exact numbers are not important to most people at home, but
understanding how to adjust different parameters to improve the cup is
useful.
STRENGTH
This is an important term when talking about a cup of coffee, but one that has
been quite widely misused. The term is commonly used on bags of coffee sold
in the supermarket, and in this instance is completely inappropriate. What
they are trying to communicate here is how dark the roast of the coffee is, and
how intense the bitterness will be.
The word ‘strength’ when used to describe a cup of coffee should be used
in the same way it is used to describe alcoholic drinks. A beer that is four per
cent strength means that four per cent of what you drink is alcohol. In the
same way, a strong cup of coffee has a higher percentage of dissolved ground
coffee in the hot water than a weak cup. When it comes to strength there is no
right and wrong – there is only individual preference.
There are two ways to control strength and the first and most common
way is by varying the ratio of coffee to water. The more coffee used to brew a
cup, the stronger the resulting cup is likely to be. When talking about
brewing, we tend to describe the strength by the number of grams of coffee
per litre of water, for example 60g/l. To brew a cup of coffee of this strength,
you would first decide how much coffee you want to brew, for example
500ml. You would then use the ratio to calculate how much coffee to use, in
this case 30g.
The preferred ratio of coffee to water varies around the world from
around 40g/l up to nearly 100g/l in Brazil and Scandinavia. Generally people
find a ratio that they enjoy and they stick to it for most brew methods. I would
recommend 60g/l as a starting point. Changing the coffee to water ratio is
how most people at home change the strength of their brews, but it is not
always the best way.
The other way to change strength is to change the level of extraction. As
we steep coffee in a French press, the water is slowly taking more and more
out of the coffee, and the resulting drink is getting stronger and stronger as it
brews. The challenge is to control the level of extraction so we take enough
from the grounds that it tastes good, before we start to extract bitter and
unpleasant flavours. Many people don’t think about changing the level of
extraction when they get a poor cup of coffee, but an error of extraction can
certainly lead to a disappointing cup.
EXACT MEASUREMENTS
Small changes in how coffee is brewed can have a big impact on taste. One of
the biggest variables is how much water you use, and being consistent is one
of the most important aspects of brewing. It is a good idea to put the coffee
brewer on scales so you can measure exactly how much boiling water you are
adding. Remember that 1ml of water weighs 1g. This will give you a lot more
control and massively improve the quality and consistency of your brews. A
set of simple digital scales is not expensive and many people already have one
in the kitchen. While it seems a little obsessive at first, once you start brewing
this way you will never want to go back.
A set of digital scales is a worthwhile investment for anyone interested in making consistently
good coffee.
MILK, CREAM AND SUGAR
Most people who are interested in coffee are aware that milk and sugar are
considered somewhat taboo by those who work in the industry. Many people
consider this a form of snobbery, and it is something of contentious point
between coffee professionals and consumers.
What is often forgotten by the professionals is that most coffee served in
the world requires something to help make it more drinkable. Cheap
commodity coffee that has been poorly roasted or badly brewed is often
incredibly bitter and lacks any sweetness. Milk, and even more so cream,
does a great job of blocking some of the bitterness, and sugar makes it more
palatable. Many people get accustomed to the taste of milk and sugar in
coffee and will then add them to an interesting cup of coffee brewed with
care. This may cause frustration for the barista, professional roaster or a
person simply passionate about great coffee.
Excellent coffee should have its own sweetness, and instead of
suppressing bitterness the milk will obscure the flavour characteristics of the
coffee, hiding the work of the producer and the expression of terroir that the
coffee has. I would always recommend trying a coffee before adding anything
to it. If it is not sufficiently palatable as black coffee, then add milk or sugar so
you enjoy the cup. However, exploring this wonderful world is extremely
difficult drinking anything other than black coffee, and the investment of
time and effort learning to appreciate it this way will be extremely rewarding.
Excellent coffee should have its own sweetness, and while everyone has personal preferences
when it comes to milk and sugar, it is good to try a coffee first before adding anything to it.
THE FRENCH PRESS
The French press, also known as a cafetière or coffee plunger, is probably the most underrated
method of brewing coffee. It is cheap, easy, repeatable and just about everyone has one at
home.
Considering its name, it seems somewhat surprising to discover that the most
familiar version of the French press was invented and patented by an Italian
called Attilio Calimani in 1929. However, a very similar brewer had been
patented first by two Frenchmen, Mayer and Delforge, in 1852.
A French press is an infusion brewer. With most methods of brewing
coffee, the water passes through the grounds. Here the water and coffee steep
together, which helps produce a more uniform extraction.
The other relatively unique aspect of the French press is the way that it
filters the grounds from the brewing liquid: by using a metal mesh. Due to the
relatively large holes in the mesh, more of the non-soluble material from the
coffee gets into the cup. The advantage of this is you get a little of the coffee
oil and some tiny suspended pieces of coffee in the cup, which gives the
resulting brew a bigger, richer body and texture. The disadvantage is what
puts many people off of the French press: the sludge. At the bottom of the cup
you will often find a reasonable quantity of silty particles of coffee that (if
accidentally drunk) are quite unpleasant and sandy in the mouth.
The brewing method opposite is designed to achieve a great brew with the
minimum amount of sludge. It requires a little more work and patience but
you will be rewarded with a great cup of coffee that will give you easy access
to all the unique flavours and characteristics of the bean.
1
2
3
4
5
Brewing coffee in a French press results in a drink of uniform extraction. The metal mesh allows
for small particles to flavour the water, creating a rich body and texture.
THE FRENCH PRESS METHOD
Ratio: 75g/l. I recommend a slightly higher ratio of coffee to water when using an infusion brewer
if you want to produce a brew with a strength similar to a pour-over brewer.
Grind: Medium/caster (superfine) sugar. Many people grind their beans very coarsely when
brewing in a French press (see Grind Size), but I don’t think this is necessary unless your grinder
produces a lot of very fine pieces and your brews quickly turn bitter.
Grind the coffee just before you start brewing. Be sure to weigh the coffee first.
Boil a kettle of fresh water with a low mineral content, suitable for brewing coffee.
Put the ground coffee in the French press and place it on the scales. A
Pour in the correct amount of water, weighing as you pour so you achieve the ratio of 75g/l.
Pour relatively quickly and try to get all the coffee wet.
Leave the coffee to steep for four minutes. During this time the coffee will float to the top to
form a crust-like layer.
6
7
8
9
10
After four minutes, take a large spoon and stir the crust at the top. This will cause most of the
coffee to fall to the bottom of the brewer.
A little foam and some floating grounds will remain on the top. Use the spoon to scoop them
off and discard them. B
Wait another five minutes. The coffee would be too hot to drink anyway, and leaving it in the
brewer allows more and more of the coffee and fine particles to sink to the bottom.
Place the mesh plunger in the top of the beaker, but do not plunge. Plunging will create
turbulence, which will stir up all the silty coffee at the bottom of the pot.
Pour the coffee slowly through the mesh into the cup(s). Until you get close to the bottom, this
liquid will have very little silt in it. If you can resist pouring out the very last bit you will end up
with a delicious, flavourful brew of coffee that has very little silt. C
11 Allow the coffee to cool in the cup(s) a little, then enjoy.
Many people recommend pouring out the entire pot once the brew is done, to prevent the
grounds continuing to steep and start to overextract. If you follow the instructions above the
coffee should not continue to brew or add negative flavours, so this is not necessary.
1
2
3
POUR-OVER OR FILTER BREWERS
The term ‘pour-over’ is used to describe a host of different brew methods. The common factor
is that they brew by percolation, which means that the water passes through a bed of coffee,
extracting flavour along the way. Usually there is some sort of material to filter the grounds from
the resulting drink, and it can be anything from paper to cloth to a fine metal mesh.
Simple cup-top filter brewers have probably been used since coffee brewing
began but the innovations on the theme came relatively late. Only cloth
filters were used originally; the invention of the paper filter is credited to a
German entrepreneur, Melitta Bentz, in 1908. Now controlled by her
grandchildren, the Melitta Group still sells filter papers, coffee and coffee
machines today.
The invention of paper filters encouraged the move away from the electric
percolator, a terrible brewer which recirculated hot water through the
grounds, brewing an incredibly bitter cup. The final death knell for the
percolator was the next major innovation in drip-coffee brewing, the electric
coffee machine. The invention can be credited to another German company
called Wigomat. Variations on the electric filter coffee machine are still
incredibly popular today, though not all produce good coffee.
Currently there is a huge range of different brewers, brands and devices
on offer, all designed to do this same job and each with its own advantages
and idiosyncrasies. The good news is that the principle behind this method of
brewing is universal and the technique is easily adapted to different brewers.
THE KEY PRINCIPLES
When coffee is brewed in this way, three variables affect the resulting cup of
coffee. Unfortunately they are not independent of each other, which is why
precise measurement of both coffee and water is so useful, especially if you
are bleary eyed when making the coffee first thing in the morning.
The grind of the coffee The finer the coffee, the more is extracted from it as the water passes
through. This is because there is a greater surface area, and because water flows through finer coffee
more slowly so there will be more contact time.
The contact time This is not only how quickly the water flows through the coffee, but also how long
it takes us to add the water. We can extend the brew time by adding the water very slowly to
increase the extraction of the coffee.
The amount of coffee The more coffee there is, the longer the water will take to flow through and
the longer the contact time.
To replicate a good brew, these three variables must be kept as consistent as
possible. If, for example, someone reduces the amount of coffee by accident,
they might assume that the reason the coffee did not brew long enough was
due to the grind being wrong. If we do not pay attention, it is very easy to get
confused and start to make bad coffee.
POURING KETTLES
When using the pour-over method to brew coffee, the rate at which you add the water plays
a role in the brewing process. Pouring slowly and carefully from a standard kettle is difficult
to do, and recently there has been a dramatic rise in coffee bars using special pouring
kettles. These are usually placed on the stove, but electric models are available. The
common factor is that the spout is very narrow, so they issue a very slow, steady stream of
water on to the coffee.
Despite their popularity in the industry, I am not convinced they are a truly worthwhile
expense for the home-brewer. They do make pouring easier, but if not used properly the
water can drop in temperature and prevent the coffee from brewing as well as it could. They
could be viewed as an overly serious and complicated gadget when, in truth, we just want to
pour water slowly over the coffee. However, if we pour at different rates on different days
(something that is very easy to do) then we will get different-tasting coffee from one day to
the next, which is not a good scenario.
THE BLOOM
This is the common practice of adding just a little water to the coffee at the
start of the brew, usually just enough to get all the coffee wet. When you add
the hot water, the grounds start to release the trapped carbon dioxide and the
bed of coffee will swell like dough rising. It is typical to wait 30 seconds
before starting to add the rest of the brew water.
Despite the widespread nature of this practice, there isn’t a lot of science
to justify it. It might be that releasing some of the carbon dioxide helps make
the coffee easier to extract, and some studies seem to support this. I think it
also adds a pleasant moment in the morning coffee ritual as watching the
grounds bloom is a little mesmerizing.
When making pour-over coffee, it is common practice to add just a little water at first to allow the
coffee to swell, or bloom.
The strength of a pour-over coffee will depend on the grind size, and the timing and speed of the
water flowing through it.
1
2
3
4
5
6
POUR-OVER OR FILTER BREWERS
Ratio: 60g/l. I recommend this as a starting point for all pour-over and filter coffee methods, but
be sure to experiment to find your preference.
Grind: Medium/caster (superfine) sugar would be suitable for brewing around 30g coffee to 500g
water. You will need to grind the beans more finely if you are brewing a single cup, and more
coarsely if you want to brew more (see Grind Size).
Grind the coffee just before you start brewing. Be sure to weigh the coffee first.
Boil a kettle of fresh water with a low mineral content, suitable for brewing coffee.
While the kettle is boiling, place the paper filter in the brewer and rinse briefly under the hot
tap. This helps to reduce any taste the paper might impart to the coffee, and also warms up
the brewing device.
Add the coffee to the brewer, place the brewer on top of the cup or jug and place on the
scales. A
Wait ten seconds once the kettle has boiled if you are pouring straight from it. If you are using
a pouring kettle, decant the water into it immediately.
Using the scales as a guide, pour a little water on to the coffee, about twice as much as the
coffee by weight. Don’t worry about being too accurate, just make sure you add enough to
wet the coffee. I like to pick the cone up and give it a little swirl to make sure all the coffee is
wet. Careful stirring with a spoon is another option. Wait thirty seconds before starting to pour
the rest of the water. B
7 Slowly pour the remainder of the water on to the coffee, weighing as you go to get an
accurate amount and taking into account the water already added. Try to pour directly on the
coffee and not the walls of the brewer as water may pass through without really extracting the
coffee. C
8
9
Once you have added all the necessary water, and the surface of the liquid is 2–3cm (about
1in) below the top of the cone, give it a gentle swirl again. This stops any coffee from sticking
to the walls of the brewer. D
Let it drip through until the bed of coffee looks dry. It should be relatively flat at the base of
the brewer. E
10 Discard the coffee and paper, remove the brewer from the cup and enjoy the coffee.
If you are not happy with the resulting cup of coffee, think about what you want to change. I
would recommend using the grind to change the flavour of the coffee. If the coffee is bitter it
may be overextracted so you should try your next brew using a slightly coarser grind. If it is
weak, sour or astringent, try grinding the coffee more finely for the next brew. Very quickly you
will know the best grind settings for the coffees you enjoy.
DIFFERENT KINDS OF FILTERS
There are three main types of filters used in pour-over and filter coffee
brewing. Each affects the resulting brew by straining out different things.
METAL FILTERS
Like the French press, metal filters only remove the larger pieces of ground
coffee. The resulting brew will have some silty sediment in it, and will look a
little cloudy. It will have the added body from both the suspended grounds
and the oils from the coffee and many people enjoy a cup like this. Metal
filters can be used for years as long as the filters are kept clean and washed
regularly, as failure to do so will allow oils to build up and become rancid.
CLOTH
Cloth has been used to filter coffee for a very long time. Like paper, it strains
out the suspended pieces of coffee but it does allow some of the oil to come
through. The resulting cup is very clean, with a richer, fuller mouthfeel.
After use, immediately rinse a cloth filter as well as possible, then dry it
quickly. If you leave the cloth to dry slowly it will develop unpleasant
flavours, similar to the smell of laundry that has been left in the machine too
long. If you use the cloth regularly, keep it stored wet in a glass of water in the
refrigerator. If you plan to store a cloth for a long time, put it wet into a
ziplock bag and freeze it. Repeatedly freezing and thawing it will cause the
cloth to degrade a little quicker, however.
The cloth shouldn’t be allowed to get too stained. For cleaning I would
recommend a product called Cafiza, made by Urnex. While this is marketed
as an espresso machine cleaner, the original formula was developed to clean
the cloths used in very large filter brewers. Dissolve a small amount in hot
water and soak the cloth in it, then rinse thoroughly and store.
PAPER
Paper filters are the most common type of filter and they produce the
cleanest cup of coffee. They strain out all of the suspended material, as well as
any oils that may have ended up in the brew. The resulting cup is a fairly clear
liquid, often with a reddish hue. I always recommend bleached white papers,
as the unbleached brown papers tend to impart an unpleasant papery taste to
the coffee.
THE ELECTRIC FILTER MACHINE METHOD
An electric coffee machine takes away a lot of the guesswork and adds plenty of repeatability.
We still have to be consistent in how much coffee we use, and how much cold water we put into
the machine, but aside from that we can trust the brewer to do its job.
However, most domestic filter coffee machines tend to make pretty bad
coffee. This is primarily because they are not capable of heating the water up
to the correct temperature. If you’re shopping for a new one, make sure it has
been certified to reach suitable temperatures. I would recommend buying a
machine endorsed by an organization such as the Specialty Coffee
Association of America or the European Coffee Brewing Centre.
I would also avoid buying a machine with any sort of hot plate. Keeping a
jug of coffee on a hot plate very quickly ‘cooks’ the coffee, producing some
unpleasant flavours. Choose instead a machine with a thermal carafe. Most
electric machines perform best when brewing larger volumes. With most
machines, I would recommend brewing at least 500ml of coffee at a time,
which will last around 30 minutes in a thermal carafe.
THE ELECTRIC FILTER MACHINE METHOD
Ratio: 60g/l. I recommend this as a starting point for all pour-over and filter coffee methods, but
be sure to experiment to find your preference.
Grind: Medium/caster (superfine) sugar, if making between 500ml and 1l of coffee. You will need
to grind the beans more coarsely if brewing large volumes (see Grind Size), as many machines can
brew up to 1l at a time, if not more.
1
2
3
4
5
6
7
Grind the coffee just before you start brewing. Be sure to weigh the coffee first.
Put the filter paper in the brewing basket, then rinse under the hot tap.
Place the brewing basket in the machine, then add fresh water with a low mineral content,
suitable for brewing coffee.
Switch on the machine and, as the brew starts, keep an eye on it. If some of the coffee is not
getting wet, give it a quick stir with a spoon.
Allow the brew to finish.
Discard the paper and grounds.
Enjoy your coffee.
As in the pour-over cone method, adjusting the grind size is a better way to change the flavour
than adjusting the amount of coffee you add if you are not happy with your cup.
•
•
THE AEROPRESS
The Aeropress is a rather unusual coffee maker, but I have yet to meet someone who has one
and does not love using it. It was invented in 2005 by Alan Adler, the inventor of the Aerobie
throwing ring – hence its name. It is a cheap, durable and very portable brewer that many coffee
professionals take with them when they travel around the world. In addition, this brewer is very
easy to clean.
The interesting thing about the Aeropress is that it combines two different
brewing methods. Initially the water and coffee steep together, as they would
in a French press. However, to complete the brew, a piston is used to push the
water through the grounds and then through a paper filter – a little like an
espresso machine and a little like a filter coffee maker.
Compared with other brewers, the number of different recipes and
techniques that can be used with the Aeropress is enormous. There is even a
competition each year for the best technique, which started in Norway but
has ended up growing into an international event dubbed the World
Aeropress Championships. Each year the organizers publish the top three
methods from the competition on their website
(www.worldaeropresschampionship.com), which should give you an idea of
how variable these machines can be.
I would, however, argue against any claims that the Aeropress can be used
to produce espresso or anything like it. It can make small, strong cups of
coffee, but a person pushing down on a plunger simply cannot replicate the
very high pressures used in an espresso machine.
The two main methods of using this machine are described at Traditional
Aeropress Method and Inverted Aeropress Method.
RATIO AND GRIND SIZE
The relationship between grind size, brew time and the amount of brewing
water used is incredibly important here. For best results with an Aeropress,
you should first decide what kind of cup of coffee you want to drink.
If you want to brew something short and strong, I suggest starting with a
ratio of 100g/l. If you want to brew a little quicker then you will need to
grind relatively fine. You can use a coarser grind if you choose but you will
need to extend the brewing time for best results.
If you want something closer to a regular cup of coffee, I suggest using a
ratio of 75g/l. This is the same ratio as that recommended for the French
press because this is also an immersion brewing method. Again, you can
match your brewing time to your grind size.
The Aeropress is like a hand-operated cross between an espresso machine and a filter coffee
maker: a piston is used to push water through the grounds and then through a paper filter.
1
2
3
4
5
6
TRADITIONAL AEROPRESS METHOD
This method will allow you to brew slightly more coffee than the inverted method described
below. It is also a little less fussy and there is less potential for mess in the kitchen.
Because there are so many factors at play, it is tempting to adjust many variables at once. Pushing
harder will speed up the brew but also extract a little more from the coffee; extending the steep
time will also extract more, as will grinding the coffee on a finer setting. However, it is always best
to change only one thing at a time, and more experimentation simply means more opportunities
to drink interesting cups of coffee.
Grind the coffee just before you start brewing. Be sure to weigh the coffee first.
Put a filter paper into the filter holder and lock into the body of the brewer.
Run some hot water through to heat the brewer and rinse the paper.
Place a mug on your digital scales, put the main part of the brewer on top and add the coffee.
A
Boil a kettle of fresh water with a low mineral content, suitable for brewing coffee.
Wait ten to twenty seconds after the kettle has boiled, turn on the scales, then add the desired
amount of water to the Aeropress (for example, for 15g of coffee I would add 200ml (200g) of
water). Start a timer. B
7
8
Give the coffee a quick stir, then put the piston part of the Aeropress in place. Make sure it
seals, but don’t push down yet. This creates a vacuum above the coffee, preventing the liquid
from dripping out of the bottom of the brewer before you want it to. C
After a period of brewing (I recommend starting with one minute) take the mug and brewer off
9
the scales and slowly push down the plunger until all the liquid has been expelled. D
Pull the piston back a few centimetres (1in) to stop the brewer from dripping when you discard
the spent coffee. Remove the filter holder and, holding the brewer over the waste bin, push
the plunger out to get rid of the grounds. Tap out any loose bits, then immediately rinse and
clean the bottom of the piston and brewer. E
10 Enjoy your coffee.
1
2
3
4
5
6
INVERTED AEROPRESS METHOD
I want to describe this method because it is so popular, but also because it often goes wrong. I
recommend starting with – and generally using – the traditional method, but if you want to
experiment, here is how to do it safely.
The idea behind this alternative method is to invert the device, so that it is impossible for the
brewing liquid to escape during the infusion phase. You will have to flip over the brewer full of
coffee on to a cup before you push the plunger and this is where things go wrong – vessels full of
hot liquid should be flipped with caution. It is also important to note that this method will not
allow you to brew as much coffee: the maximum brew is probably 200ml of water.
Grind the coffee just before you start brewing. Be sure to weigh the coffee first.
Put a filter paper into the filter holder and lock into the body of the brewer.
Run some hot water through to heat the brewer and rinse the paper.
Insert the piston about 2cm (¾in) into the brewer, turn the device upside down and place it on
the digital scales. Add the coffee. A
Boil a kettle of fresh water with a low mineral content, suitable for brewing coffee.
Wait ten to twenty seconds after the kettle has boiled, turn on the scales, then add the desired
amount of hot water to the Aeropress. B
7
8
9
Start a timer and give the coffee a quick stir. Steep for one minute.
While the coffee is steeping, remove the brewer from the scales. Put the filter holder
containing the paper on to the brewer. If you have rinsed the paper it should stick when
turned upside down.
Slowly pull the top part of the brewer down on to the piston until the liquid is nearly touching
the filter. This will make the piston much more stable and less likely to pop off during the flip.
C
10 At the end of the steep, place a mug upside down on top of the brewer and, with one hand on
each, carefully flip them over. D, E
11
12
13
Slowly push down the plunger until all the liquid has been expelled into the mug. F
Empty and rinse the brewer.
Enjoy your coffee.
STOVE-TOP MOKA POT
Most homes have a moka pot in use or at least buried in a cupboard. In many ways I struggle to
explain its popularity, as it is not the most user-friendly device in the world and it is not easy to
produce delicious coffee with one. It tends to produce very strong, very bitter coffee but it is
sufficiently palatable to espresso drinkers that just about every household in Italy uses one
religiously.
The patent for the moka pot belongs to Alfonso Bialetti, who invented it in
1933. The Bialetti company continues to produce very popular brewers
today. Moka pots are often still made from aluminium (about which there
was a false scare story some years ago), although it is possible, and more
desirable, to buy a stainless-steel model.
The method below is a little different to the way most people use their
moka pot, but the advice may help even those who are already happy with the
coffee they produce from it. My biggest issue with this type of coffee maker is
that the brewing water reaches temperatures so high that you start to extract
very bitter compounds from the coffee. Some people treasure the bitterness
of a moka pot brew, others utterly hate the device because of it. The
technique below has helped people find a new respect for their longforgotten
brewer and enjoy their coffee a different way.
However, because of the high coffee to water ratio, and because the brew
time is quite fast, it is still difficult to make light-roasted, dense or
particularly acidic and juicy coffees taste good using this brewing method. I
would recommend using a light espresso roast, or perhaps a coffee that is
grown at lower altitudes. I would steer away from dark roasts because of the
propensity of this method to produce a bitter cup.
1
2
3
4
To get the best results from your stove-top moka pot, choose a light espresso roast or coffee
grown at lower altitudes. This will avoid making an overly bitter brew.
STOVE-TOP MOKA METHOD
Ratio: 200g/l. In most cases, you do not have much control over the ratio. You simply fill up the
ground coffee holder and then fill the unit with water until it reaches just below the overpressure
valve, so there is little room for manoeuvre.
Grind: Quite fine/salt. I do not recommend using an espresso/very fine grind, a somewhat
controversial stance. I prefer a slightly coarser grind than most people would choose because I
prefer to minimize the bitterness in the resulting cup (see Grind Size).
Grind the coffee just before you start brewing, and fill the basket so it is even and level. Do not
compress the coffee.
Boil a kettle of fresh water with a low mineral content, suitable for brewing coffee. The
advantage of starting with hot water is that the pot is on the heat for less time and the ground
coffee doesn’t get as hot, which helps reduce the bitterness.
Fill the bottom section of the brewer with hot water to just below the small valve. Do not cover
it with water; it is a safety valve which prevents too much pressure from building up. A
Put the coffee basket in place. Make sure the circular rubber gasket is completely clean, then
carefully assemble the brewer. If this does not seal properly, the brewer will not work properly.
B
5 Put the pot on a low to medium heat, leaving the lid up. When the water starts to boil in the
lower chamber, the pressure created by the steam pushes the water through the tube that
feeds it to the coffee. The faster and harder you boil the water, the more pressure you will
create and the faster the brew process will be – you don’t want to go too quickly. C
6
7
8
Coffee should slowly start to appear in the top chamber. Listen carefully: when you hear a
gurgling sound, it is time to turn off the heat and stop brewing. This sound indicates that most
of the water has been pushed up already and that steam is now starting to come through the
coffee, which will make the brew more bitter.
To stop the brew, run the base of the brewer under cold running water. This drop in
temperature will cause the steam to condense and the pressure to disappear. D
Enjoy your coffee.
Make sure the brewer has cooled down to a safe temperature before taking it apart for
cleaning. It must be completely dry before you put it way. Avoid storing it locked fully into
position, as this will cause the rubber seal to age more quickly.
THE VACUUM POT
The vacuum coffee pot, also now known as the syphon brewer, is a very old and exceedingly
entertaining way to make coffee. It is, however, also extremely annoying in many respects and
sufficiently frustrating that many people relegate their brewer to a cupboard or a shelf as a
display piece.
Vacuum coffee pots first appeared in Germany in the 1830s. A patent was
issued for one in 1838 to a French woman, Jeanne Richard. The design has
not really changed a great deal since its conception. The brewer has two
chambers, the lower of which is filled with water and heated to boiling point.
The upper chamber, which contains the coffee grounds, is then placed on top,
creating a seal and allowing steam to build up in the lower chamber. This
trapped steam pushes the water from the bottom chamber up through a tube
and a filter into the upper chamber. The water is, at this point, just below
boiling point and suitable for making coffee. The brew is left to steep for the
desired amount of time; it is important to keep heating the lower chamber
while the coffee steeps.
To finish the brew, the vacuum pot is removed from the heat source. As
the steam cools, it condenses back into water and creates a vacuum, which
sucks the coffee from the upper chamber back through the filter into the
bottom chamber. The grounds remain trapped and separate in the upper
section and the coffee can be poured from the bottom carafe. The whole
process is a pleasing application of physics, and is often likened to a
classroom experiment. Unfortunately, it is sufficiently difficult to get right
that most people try a couple of times and then give up, which is a shame.
Vacuum coffee pots are an elaborate way to make coffee by immersion. Steam rises from the
lower chamber and steeps the coffee grounds held above, then condenses the brew into the
lower carafe.
ADDITIONAL TOOLS
An independent heat source is required for this brewing method. Some
vacuum coffee pots are designed to sit directly on a kitchen stove, others
come with their own alcohol-burning candle. These candles are best replaced
with a very small, butane camping stove. In Japan and in some specialist
coffee shops, the preferred heat source is a halogen lamp placed under the
brewer. This is not the most efficient source of heat but it does look fantastic.
Some people use small bamboo paddles to stir the coffee but these do
nothing special and a spoon works equally well. While I cannot deny there is
pleasure in acquiring and using a special set of tools for a ritual, I won’t claim
they make any difference to the coffee.
THE FILTER
Most traditional vacuum pots use a cloth filter, which is wrapped around a
metal disc. It is important to keep this cloth clean. After every use, clean the
cloth as thoroughly as possible under a hot tap. If it is not going to be used for
a few days, clean it with a suitable detergent. For more information about
cleaning and storing cloth filters, see (Different Kinds of Filters). There are
alternatives to cloth, such as paper or metal, but these often need special
adapters.
1
2
3
4
5
6
7
8
THE VACUUM POT METHOD
Ratio: 75g/l. Some people prefer to use a little more coffee than this for syphon brewing,
especially in Japan where this method is commonly used.
Grind: Medium/caster sugar. Because this is an immersion method, you can match your brew time
to the grind size. I would caution against going too fine as you can stall the draw-down process to
end the brewing. A very coarse grind will mean a very long brew time at higher temperatures,
which can make the brew rather bitter (see Grind Size).
Grind the coffee just before you start brewing. Be sure to weigh the coffee first.
Boil a kettle of fresh water with a low mineral content, suitable for brewing coffee.
Fit the filter into the upper chamber, making sure it is completely flush.
Place the bottom chamber on your digital scales and pour in your calculated amount of hot
water, following your desired ratio.
Transfer the lower chamber to your heat source (a small butane burner, an alcohol burner or a
halogen lamp, as shown here) using the handle to move it.
Place the upper chamber on top, but do not seal it yet. If you put the seal on too soon, the
expanding gases will push the water up into the top chamber before it is the right
temperature, making your coffee taste bad.
When the water starts to boil, seal the top chamber on top of the lower chamber. If you are
using a controllable heat source, reduce the heat to low at this point. The boiling water will
now start pushing up into the top chamber. Look directly down on the filter to make sure it is
centred: if it isn’t, you will see lots of bubbles flowing from one side. Use your paddle or a
spoon to push the filter carefully into place so it is correctly positioned.
Initially the bubbling in the top chamber will be quite aggressive, with large bubbles. Once the
bubbles become smaller, you are ready to brew. Add the coffee to the water and stir it in until
it is all completely wet, then start a timer. A
9 A crust will form on top. After thirty seconds, give it a gentle stir to knock the floating coffee
back into the brew. B
10
11
After another thirty seconds, turn off the heat source. Once the coffee begins to be drawn
down into the lower chamber, stir it gently once clockwise and then once anticlockwise to
prevent it sticking to the walls of the brewer, but if you stir too much you will get a large dome
of coffee at the end of the brew, which suggests uneven extraction.
Allow the coffee to draw down completely. A slightly domed bed of grounds will be left in the
top chamber. Pour the coffee into a coffee pot, as the retained heat from the carafe can give
the coffee a cooked taste. C
12 Let the coffee cool. This brewing method produces an incredibly hot cup of coffee. D
Coffee was first discovered in ninth-century Ethiopia, and the Tomoca coffee shop in Addis
Ababa is the oldest surviving café in the country. The later influence of Italian rule is seen in the
sleek espresso machines.
ESPRESSO
Over the last fifty years, espresso has come to be considered by many to be the ‘best’ way to
drink coffee. This is not true, since no brew method can be inherently better than any others,
but espresso is now the most popular coffee drink consumed out of the home, and many cafés
charge more for an espresso than for a filter coffee.
Undeniably espresso has been the driver of coffee retail, whether it is part of
the Italian-style coffee culture now widely popular, or the Americanized,
fast-food version we see in chain coffee shops across the globe.
Making espresso is both incredibly frustrating and also very rewarding. I
must offer a word of caution here: don’t invest in an espresso machine at
home unless you want a new hobby. The fantasy of whipping up a couple of
delicious cappuccinos to drink on a lazy Sunday morning while reading the
paper is a very long way away from the work involved in preparing the drinks
(and cleaning up afterwards). If you just want the drinks and not the work,
then do what I do and pop out to a local café where someone else can deal
with it all. However, I accept that, for many of us, great coffee is not available
locally and this is a good reason to master the art of espresso brewing at
home.
THE INVENTION OF ESPRESSO
As we have already seen, when you brew coffee, the grind size is very
important. The finer you grind the beans, the easier it will be to extract the
coffee, and the less water you require to do so. This means you can produce a
stronger cup of coffee. The problem starts when you try to grind the beans so
fine that gravity alone cannot push the water through the bed of coffee. This
puts a limit on how strong a cup of coffee you can produce.
This problem has been recognized for a very long time, and the first
solution used the pressure of trapped steam to push water through the coffee.
Initially this early espresso machine was simply used by cafés to make regular
strength coffee much quicker, hence the name. However, the pressure you
can generate from steam alone, without endangering lives, is actually
relatively low so various other methods such as air pressure or mains water
pressure were tried.
The big breakthrough came with Achille Gaggia’s invention. This used a
large lever, pulled by the operator, to compress a spring. When the spring was
released, the pressure forced the very hot water through the coffee. The
sudden jump in pressure was dramatic, and allowed the use of a much finer
grind of coffee to produce a much smaller, stronger, but well extracted cup.
CREMA
For most coffee drinkers, one of the key features of espresso is not just the
strength of the cup but also the layer of dense foam that tops the drink. Crema
is simply Italian for cream and it is the natural head of foam that forms on top
of the coffee, much like a head appears on a pint of beer.
The reason this happens is that when water is under very high pressure it
is able to dissolve more carbon dioxide, the gas present in coffee that was
produced during the roasting process. When the brewed liquid gets back to
normal atmospheric pressure on its way to the cup, the liquid can no longer
hold on to all of the gas so it comes out of solution as innumerable tiny
bubbles. These bubbles become trapped in the coffee liquid and appear as a
stable foam.
For a long time crema was considered important, but in fact it can only tell
you two things. Firstly, whether the coffee is relatively fresh – the longer ago
it was roasted, the less carbon dioxide it will contain so the less foam it will
produce. And secondly, whether the cup of espresso is strong or weak. The
darker in colour the foam, the stronger the liquid will be. This is because
crema is just a foam of the liquid, lighter in colour because of the way the
bubbles refract light, so the colour of the coffee determines the colour of the
crema. For this reason, coffee that has been roasted darker will also produce
a darker crema. The crema cannot tell you if the raw coffee is good, or has
been well roasted, or if the equipment used to make the espresso is clean – all
key factors in a delicious cup of coffee.
Patented in 1905, this La Pavoni two-group Ideale model was the first machine of its kind to be
marketed. It introduced espresso-style coffee to Europe and, later, to the rest of the world.
••
••
THE BASIC TECHNIQUE
To brew espresso, the ground coffee is placed in a small metal basket held in a
handle. The basket has tiny holes that allow the liquid to pass through but
prevent any of the pieces of ground coffee, with the exception of the tiniest
particles, from making it into the cup.
The coffee in the basket is compressed (tamped) so it is flat. The handle
containing the coffee is locked into the espresso machine and the pump then
activated. The machine pumps near-boiling water from the reservoir in the
machine through the coffee; the liquid then drips into the waiting cup below.
With some machines the operator decides when to switch off the pump to
finish brewing, either gauging the end of the brew by eye or by weighing the
coffee as it comes out to make sure the desired amount of water has been
used. Other machines dispense a specific amount of water and then stop
automatically.
Great espresso is about recipe, and good coffee roasters will supply you
with plenty of information about how to brew their coffee to get great results.
A good recipe is about accurate measurements and should include the
following:
The weight of ground coffee to use in grams (g).
The amount of liquid you should produce from that coffee, ideally
expressed in grams or at least expressed in volume (ml).
How long the brewing process should take.
How hot the water should be for brewing.
Rather than just give a basic guide, I want to offer some information that will
help produce genuinely excellent espresso at home, techniques that I have
taught to baristas around the world for years and that I believe are key to
brewing espresso as well as is currently possible.
A great barista produces the desired amount of coffee in a certain time frame. Even when using a
machine as sleek as this 1956 La San Marco, the first thing to check is that the grind of coffee is
right.
PRESSURE AND RESISTANCE
The aim when brewing an espresso is to have the machine produce a desired
amount of liquid in a certain time frame. For example, the recipe might state
that we want to brew 18g of ground coffee and produce around 36g of liquid
in 27–29 seconds. In order to achieve this, what we need to control is how
quickly the water flows through the ground coffee.
The speed at which the water flows through the coffee determines how
much flavour is extracted. If the water passes through too slowly, we take too
much out of the coffee and it will be overextracted with a bitter, ashy and very
harsh taste. If the water flows through too quickly, we don’t extract enough
from the coffee and it will taste very sour, astringent and weak.
The way we control the flow of water through coffee is by changing how
easy it is for the water to pass through. This can be achieved by varying two
factors: the amount of coffee we use (the more you put in the basket, the
longer it takes for the water to pass through), and the size of the coffee
particles.
The finer we grind the coffee, the better the pieces fit together and the
more difficult it is for the water to pass between them. If you took two jars
and filled one with sand and one with the same weight of pebbles, water
would flow through the pebbles much faster than through the sand. In the
same way, the coarser we grind coffee the faster the machine can push the
water through it.
The problem many people experience, and one that brings frustration to
thousands of baristas around the world every day, is that when the flow rate is
wrong and the coffee doesn’t taste good, it is not immediately obvious if the
grind was incorrect or if the coffee dose was wrong. For this reason, in the
home environment, I recommend measuring the coffee wherever possible. It
will reduce mistakes, frustration and waste. If you have used the correct
weight of coffee, you will know that it is the grind size that needs to be
changed.
Espresso is probably the most intolerant method of preparation of any
food or drink in the world. This is not an understatement. A few seconds
outside of the target brew time, a gram of ground coffee too little in the
basket, a few grams too little liquid in the cup – all of these will have a
dramatic effect on the taste of the coffee and may be the difference between a
delightful cup and pouring the results of your hard work down the sink.
My recommendation is to keep as many things as possible constant, and
only alter one variable at a time. If you get a disappointing cup of coffee, try
altering the grind size first, because if this is wrong, trying to fix something
else won’t deliver the results you want, either.
TAMPING
Tamping is the term used for the compression of the ground coffee before
brewing. We do this because ground coffee is fluffy, and if we put
uncompressed coffee into the machine the high-pressure water would find
the air pockets between the coffee grounds and pass through quickly,
skipping much of the coffee. When water does not pass evenly through the
coffee we call it channelling. When this happens, the resulting espresso will
taste very sour and unpleasant, because the water has not evenly extracted
the ground coffee.
Many people place a great deal of importance on tamping, but I do not
believe it is as important as people think. The goal is simply to push the air
out of the coffee bed and to make sure the bed is level and even before
brewing. How hard you compress the coffee doesn’t make an enormous
difference to how quickly the water passes through it. Once you push all the
air out, there is little or no reward for pushing any harder. The espresso
machine pushes the water on to the coffee at nine bars or 130psi (pounds of
force per square inch), and this is much more aggressively than a human can
push down. The goal is simply to produce an even coffee bed, and do no more.
If they notice a little coffee stuck to the walls of the basket, some people
will use the tamper to tap the handle to loosen them so they can be tamped
down in to the coffee bed. Don’t tap. If you tap the handle, you may knock the
puck of coffee loose from the walls of the basket, allowing the shot to channel.
Secondly, you may damage your tamper and the nice ones are beautiful
objects in their own right.
My final piece of advice is to hold the tamper properly. It should be held
like a flashlight, with your thumb pointing straight down. When you apply
pressure to the coffee, your elbow should be directly above it and your wrist
should be straight. If you imagine a screwdriver in your hand, and a screw
sticking directly up out of the work bench, you should put your arm in this
same position as you push down in order to protect your wrists (see Espresso
Method). Repeatedly performing this action incorrectly has given a huge
number of professional baristas trouble with their wrists.
1
2
3
4
ESPRESSO METHOD
In this process we’re going to make two cups of espresso. These could go into two separate cups,
or into one cup as a double espresso.
Fill the reservoir in the espresso machine with water with a low mineral content, suitable for
brewing coffee, then switch on the machine to heat the water.
Grind the coffee just before you start brewing. Be sure to weigh the coffee first. A
Make sure the basket is clean. Wipe it with a small dry cloth to make sure it is dry and to
remove any leftover grounds once you have tapped out the puck of coffee from the last brew.
The cloth will help remove the oily residue from the last brew as well.
If you can, place the entire brew handle (also called the portafilter) on the scales to weigh out
the coffee. If this is not possible, remove the basket from the handle and place it on the scales.
B
5
6
If your scales are accurate enough, weigh the ground coffee to within 0.1g of your recipe,
whether it is your own recipe carefully honed over time, or the recipe given to you by the
roaster. This level of accuracy may seem like overkill, but digital scales are now relatively cheap
and I promise that using a set of scales will help you make more delicious coffee more often.
Remove the handle from the scales and tamp the coffee flat in the basket, keeping your wrist
straight, to make sure the coffee bed is even. Leaving the tamper on top of the coffee –
observing the angle of the handle will show you whether or not it is sufficiently flat. C
7
8
9
10
11
12
Weigh the cup or cups into which you are going to brew the coffee.
Turn on the machine to flush some water through the group head. This will help to stabilize
the temperature of the brew water, as well as rinse off any coffee grounds remaining from the
previous brew.
Carefully lock the handle into the machine and arrange the cup(s) in place to receive the
coffee.
Get your timing device ready. If the machine doesn’t have a time display showing you how
long the shot has been brewing, use a simple stopwatch on your mobile phone or a kitchen
timer.
As soon as possible, start brewing the coffee. When you start to brew, start the watch. Brew
the coffee for the length of time recommended by the roaster. If you don’t have a
recommendation, try somewhere between 27 and 29 seconds.
When the desired brew time is up, stop the machine. When the handle has finished dripping
(after a few seconds), return the cups to the weighing scale to check how much coffee you
have made.
The original home of the espresso is Caffe Florian on St Mark’s Square, Venice, which has been
serving coffee since 1720.
JUDGING THE RESULTS
Ideally, the weight should be within a few grams of the roaster’s
recommendations. If it is not, we can make a simple change to try next time:
• If there is too much liquid, the flow was too fast. We need to slow the
water down by grinding the coffee finer.
• If there is not enough liquid, the flow was too slow. We should increase
the flow rate by grinding the coffee more coarsely.
For many people this kind of precision seems a little extreme, and some
prefer to use volume in the cup (gauged by eye) instead of weight. This same
protocol will work, but it is not as accurate.
Once a grinder is set for a particular batch of coffee, there will be limited
need to adjust it, unless your home is subject to dramatic swings in
temperature during the day.
CHANGING THE GRIND
With espresso, you really need to be grinding the coffee yourself with a burr
grinder that allows you to adjust the grind size easily. When you start brewing
a new bag of coffee you will need to set the grinder for it. The term we use for
setting a grinder in the industry is ‘dialling in’.
Just about every grinder has some ground coffee left inside it after
grinding. This means that if you change the grind setting, the first coffee it
will push out will actually be the old grind size. A common practice is to purge
the grinder by grinding a few extra grams of beans at the new size to push out
the old grounds, and then to throw this coffee away. If you change the grind
size but don’t see a change in the brewing process, it is likely you did not
purge enough coffee from the grinder.
I would always recommend making small changes when adjusting a
grinder. When you get a new grinder, it is a good idea to buy some cheap
(though ideally fresh) coffee to play with to make sure you understand how
big an effect a small change in the grind setting has on the brewing process.
Most grinders have numbers on the settings. The actual value of the numbers
is meaningless, but if you want to grind finer, turn the dial to a smaller
number and vice versa. Many grinders have marked steps that you can select,
sometimes whole numbers and sometimes divisions of numbers. Start by
changing the setting by a single step when the grind is wrong.
BREW RATIO
There are many different styles of espresso, and people have different
preferences for how long or strong they like their espresso to be.
Commercially we tend to talk about the brew ratio: how much liquid should
you be brewing from a fixed weight of ground coffee? My own personal
preference, and recommended starting point, is to brew two parts of liquid
out of one part ground coffee. For example, if I start with 18g of ground
coffee, I would want my espresso to weigh 36g (2 x 18). The Italians generally
prefer a smaller coffee, so if I were making a double espresso I might use 14g
of ground coffee to produce 28g (2 x 14) of liquid. The ratio of coffee to water
is fixed to maintain my strength preference.
If I want a stronger espresso, I can change my ratio. Instead of 1:2 I might
use 1:1.5, which would mean my 18g of ground coffee produces only 27g (1.5 x
18) of liquid. This shorter espresso will be very strong, and I would have to
adjust the grind finer so the brewing process takes a similar amount of time.
If I just let a smaller amount of water come through at the same flow rate as
before, the brew will be over faster and I will have failed to extract all of the
good flavours that I want.
BREW TEMPERATURE
The coffee industry is only now recovering from an obsession with the
stability of brew temperature in espresso brewing. Changing the brew
temperature does have an effect on the extraction and the taste of the coffee,
but I don’t believe it is as important as many make it out to be. The hotter the
brew water, the more effective it will be at extracting flavour. So for lighter
roasts I would recommend a higher brew temperature than for darker roasts,
which give up their flavours more easily.
There are claims that a change in temperature of 0.1°C (0.18°F) will
change the taste of the coffee. I believe that to be nonsense. I think 1°C
(1.8°F) creates the smallest change that most of us could detect, and that a
slightly incorrect brew temperature is so rarely the reason I am served a poor
espresso.
If you can control the temperature on your espresso machine, I would
recommend a water temperature of between 90°C (194°F) and 94°C (201°F).
If the espresso does not taste right, try adjusting other aspects of the recipe
first. However, if there is a persistent negative taste (such as a constant
sourness) try increasing the temperature, and if there is a persistent
bitterness, try decreasing the temperature (after you have checked your
equipment is properly clean).
A meeting place for artists, intellectuals and students, College Street Coffee-House, near the
University of Calcutta in Kolkata, India, has played an important role in the city’s cultural history.
BREW PRESSURE
The first espresso machines created pressure using a compressed spring to
push the water through the coffee. As the spring expanded, the pressure it
produced would decline, so it started with a very high pressure and ended up
relatively low. When electric pumps became common, they needed to be set
at a constant pressure. Some say that the setting of nine bars (130 psi) was
chosen because it was the approximate average of the varying pressure
created by the springs on older machines.
Luckily, this also appears to be the pressure at which we get the best flow
rate. At pressures below nine bars, the coffee bed provides so much resistance
that the flow rate drops. At pressures above nine bars, the coffee bed becomes
so compacted that the flow rate drops again. As long as your machine
produces roughly the right pressure you should have no trouble. If the
pressure is too low, your espresso may lack body and the desired creaminess.
At very high pressures, there can be a strange woody bitterness to the
espresso that is not enjoyable.
•
•
There is now equipment available that allows baristas to adjust the
pressure of their brew water, but there is not yet enough data to make a viable
case for introducing this technology to home machines.
CLEANING AND MAINTENANCE
I would estimate that 95 per cent of the commercial coffee machines in
business throughout the world are not cleaned properly and this is one of the
reasons people are served disappointing, bitter and unpleasant coffee every
day. There is no such thing as too clean, and although it requires a little bit of
work each time you finish making coffee, a clean machine will make your
coffee taste consistently sweet and clean.
COFFEES ROASTED FOR ESPRESSO
Espresso is quite different from the other brewing methods, and because of the small
amounts of water being used it is often a challenge to fully extract the coffee. Additionally,
because the concentration is so high (the coffee being so strong), balance is very important.
A coffee that may taste delicious and balanced as a weaker brew can become dominated by
overpowering acidity when consumed as a stronger cup.
For that reason, many roasters change how they roast their coffee when they know it is
going to be used for espresso. Though this practice is not universal, I would certainly
recommend a slightly slower and slightly darker roast for espresso than I would recommend
for a coffee being brewed with a filter.
However, roasters around the world disagree strongly about what the right level of roast is
for espresso and there is a wide spectrum on offer from relatively light through to a much
darker roast. Personally, I prefer lighter roasts because they allow the particular
characteristics of the raw coffee to be appreciated. Darker roasts often carry a more generic
‘roasted coffee’ flavour, and also have a higher level of bitterness, which I don’t enjoy. What
I prefer is only really important to me, however, and everyone has their own preference.
The darker the roast of coffee, the easier it is to extract. This is because the coffee bean
becomes increasingly porous and brittle as it is roasted. This means that less water is
required in the brewing process to properly extract the coffee. If body and mouthfeel are
important to you, then you might prefer slightly darker roasts brewed at a 1:1.5 brew ratio. If
sweetness and clarity of flavour are important, I would recommend a lighter espresso roast
brewed at a ratio of 1:2.
When you finish making coffee, remove the basket from the handle and
clean underneath it with soapy water on a scourer. If you don’t do this, an
unpleasant patina of dried coffee will accumulate there and it will smell
and taste awful.
Espresso machines dispense water through a mesh screen. If this is easily
removable on your machine, take it out and clean it, and also clean the
•
•
•
•
water dispersion block it sits against.
While the dispersion screen is out, clean the rubber gasket. If coffee builds
here, the basket won’t make a seal against the machine and water will leak
out during brewing, often dripping down the sides of the brew handle into
the cup.
Remove the brew basket from the handle and replace with the cleaning
basket. This is the basket with no holes in it that will have been supplied
with your machine.
I recommend using a commercial espresso machine cleaner at the end of
every session of coffee making. This will clean out any liquid coffee left
inside the machine, which will turn increasingly rancid and unpleasant
over time. Follow the manufacturer’s instructions for how to use a cleaning
powder on your machine.
Make sure the steam wand is clean if you have used it.
Some people claim that a machine can taste too clean, and that you need to
brew an espresso or two to ‘season’ it after cleaning to take away the metallic
taste. I have never found this to be the case, and as long as your machine is
properly warmed up (add at least ten to fifteen minutes on top of
manufacturer’s recommendation), it should make great coffee straight away.
I recommend keeping the machine switched off when not in use. Use a
timer to make sure it is ready to make coffee when you want it, but turn it off
when you have finished. Espresso machines use quite a lot of power and it is a
waste to leave them on if they are not being used.
To keep your machine in good working order, make sure the water you use
is suitable. If you use hard water, limescale will build up quickly in the
machine and cause it to malfunction. Many manufacturers offer advice for
descaling, as some limescale will form even in soft water areas (it will just
take a lot longer). Err on the side of caution because if you let your machine
scale up completely, it may be difficult to descale without help from a
professional (and a bill to go with it).
Over time, the rubber gasket in the group head may need changing. When
you lock in your brew handle, it should stick out at ninety degrees to the
machine. If it starts to twist much further across, the rubber may be wearing
and it should be replaced.
Customers congregate around baristas at London’s first espresso bar, the Moka Bar at 29 Frith
Street, which was established in 1953 and opened by the Italian actress Gina Lollobrigida.
STEAMING MILK
Well-steamed milk combined with well-brewed espresso is a wonderful sensory experience.
Great milk foam is like liquid marshmallow: soft, moussey and undeniably enjoyable to drink.
The goal is to create bubbles so small that they are almost invisible (often called ‘microfoam’).
Foam like this is elastic and pourable, and adds a wonderful lift to the texture of drinks like
cappuccino and café latte.
It is important to use fresh milk for steaming. As it reaches its use-by date,
milk tastes fine and is still safe to drink but it starts to lose its ability to create
a stable foam. It will foam as normal when you steam it, but the bubbles will
soon break down. If you lift the jug of foamed milk to your ear, you will hear it
fizzing like a freshly poured soda as the air escapes.
When we steam milk we have two separate tasks to accomplish: we must
whip in air to create the bubbles and we must heat the milk. With most steam
wands it is best to tackle one task at a time, so the first thing to focus on is
creating the bubbles. Then, when we have added enough air to the milk and it
is the desired volume, we can focus solely on heating it to the desired
temperature.
THE RIGHT TEMPERATURE
The ideal temperature for milk, when combined with coffee, is a subject of
some contention between many coffee shops and their customers. Milk
begins to irreversibly degrade in flavour and texture above 68°C (154°F).
This is because the heat alters and denatures the proteins, creating new
flavours, though not always good ones. The smell of cooked milk reminds me
of eggs at best, and baby sick at worst.
A very hot cappuccino will lack the texture, flavour and sweetness of a
drink made with milk that has only been heated to 60°C (140°F). It is
impossible to produce good microfoam when the milk has been heated to
boiling point. Unfortunately this is the nature of milk – we can either have a
very hot or a very delicious drink. This is not to say that all drinks should be
served lukewarm, instead that they should be enjoyed as soon as they are
made.
WHOLE MILK OR SKIMMED?
It is the protein in the milk that supports the bubbles, so milk will foam well regardless of
whether it is skimmed or whole. However, the fat content does play a role: it adds a
wonderful texture to the drink, but also changes the way flavour is released. A cappuccino
made with skimmed milk has an immediate, intense coffee flavour which does not linger. If
the cappuccino is made with whole milk, the flavours will be less intense but will last longer. I
always recommend using whole milk, but I also prefer relatively small milk drinks. I think a
small, rich cappuccino is a delight.
1
2
3
4
STEAMING MILK METHOD
This technique is suitable for traditional steam wands. If your machine has a range of attachments
or automatic frothing functions, follow the manufacturer’s instructions.
Start by pointing the steam wand over the drip tray or into a cloth and briefly opening the
valve. This will get rid of any condensation inside the wand. This is known as purging. A
Pour cold fresh milk into a clean stainless-steel steaming pitcher. It should not be more than
sixty per cent full.
Dip the steam wand into the milk so just the tip is submerged.
Open the valve to full flow and gently lower the pitcher until the wand is almost out of the
milk. Listen carefully: you want to hear the slurping sound of the steam wand start to whip air
into the milk. As the milk expands, lower the pitcher a little more to bring it back to the surface
if you wish to add more air.
5
6
7
8
9
When you have your desired amount of foam, which should ideally happen before the milk
feels warm to the touch, then submerge the steam tip again to start heating the foam – you
want it to be just under the surface. Position it slightly to one side and you will see the milk
start to spin and churn. The process should now be relatively quiet.
To test whether the milk is warm enough, place your free hand on the bottom of the jug.
Continue to heat the milk until the jug becomes uncomfortable to touch. At this point the milk
will be about 55°C (131°F). Remove your hand from the bottom of the jug and continue to
steam for three to five seconds, depending on how hot you like your milk. B
Close the steam valve fully and put the milk pitcher down. Wipe the steam wand with a clean,
damp cloth and purge the wand into the cloth to remove any leftover milk from inside the
wand.
Don’t worry if your foam contains a few large, ugly bubbles. If you let it sit for a few seconds,
the milk will drain off the surface of the larger bubbles, making them very brittle. A couple of
gentle taps of the steaming pitcher on the counter will usually pop them.
If you want to pour a combination of milk and foam into your drink, which I strongly
recommend, you must make sure that they are fully combined. After the tapping, swirl the milk
and foam together, much like you might swirl wine in a glass before smelling it. You can be
quite aggressive, as you want to make sure that the liquid milk is fully combined with the
wonderful microfoam. Swirl until the milk foam has a glossy finish, then pour it into your drink.
C
ESPRESSO EQUIPMENT
There are espresso machines to suit almost any budget, from cheap units with which you can
make a start, to smarter machines that can cost as much as a small car. All of them are designed
to do the same thing: heat water, then push it forwards at high pressure.
The more money you pay, the more the machines improve in build quality,
control and consistency. Most of this consistency concerns how the machine
heats water, and how it creates water pressure, and different types of
espresso machine achieve this in different ways.
THERMOBLOCK MACHINES
The cheapest domestic espresso machines use this technology to produce
espresso. There is a single unit inside the machine with an element to heat
the water. Most of these machines have two settings: one to heat the water up
to a suitable temperature for brewing coffee, and the other to boil water to
generate steam. This means that the machine can only perform one function
at a time, and I would recommend brewing coffee first, and then heating up
the machine to steam milk.
Broadly speaking, thermoblock machines do not produce a very
consistent water temperature, and the lack of ability to perform both brewing
and steaming at once limits how many drinks the machine can practically
make, which can be frustrating for the user. However, when paired with a
good grinder, they can certainly produce good espresso.
Thermoblock machines usually use a vibration pump to generate
pressure. These have two disadvantages: they are quite noisy, and they are
rarely accurately set. The desired pressure for espresso is around nine bars
(130psi). These pumps are usually set much higher and manufacturers will
often proudly boast that their machine can produce fifteen bars (220psi) of
pressure, as if more is somehow better.
The machines have an overpressure valve that opens above nine bars
(130psi) to alleviate the excess pressure. These valves are not usually very
well calibrated, and may need adjustment over time. However, I do not
recommend opening up your machine as you will probably invalidate your
warranty.
Thermoblock machines are undoubtedly the most popular and
widespread of espresso machines, but many people who enjoy making
espresso soon begin to feel constrained and start to think about an upgrade.
Customers in Rome in the 1950s are served their espresso by a smartly dressed barista. Though a
gleaming machine is a delight to look at, it is more important to have an excellent coffee grinder.
HEAT-EXCHANGE MACHINES
Although it is still common in commercial espresso machines, this
technology is available in home machines too. The machine still has a single
element, but it heats a small boiler of water to around 120°C (248°F). This
generates plenty of steam, which is always available for foaming milk.
However, the water in this boiler is too hot to brew coffee, so the machine
pumps fresh cold water through what is called a heat exchange. This is
usually some sort of tube that passes through the steam boiler. While the
coffee-brewing water is kept separate from the boiler water, heat from the
boiler is quickly passed to the brewing water to bring it up to the desired
temperature.
These kinds of machines are often referred to as ‘prosumer’, as they
straddle the divide between consumer prices and professional performance.
The disadvantage of heat-exchange machines, certainly domestic ones, is that
changes in the boiler temperature will affect the temperature of the brew
water. If you want more steam, you have to increase the boiler temperature,
which will also increase the brew temperature. If you want to noticeably
reduce the brew temperature, your steaming performance may suffer.
Many of these machines use mechanical thermostats to control the boiler
temperature and these can result in some variation. Better machines have
more reliable control over the steam boiler temperature.
Heat exchange machines can be fitted with either a vibration pump (see
above) or a rotary pump. Rotary pumps are used on commercial equipment
and are quieter and easier to adjust, but there is not a lot of difference in
performance between the different types of pump if they are set to the same
pressure.
DUAL-BOILER MACHINES
The idea here is to separate the coffee brew water entirely from the water
used to generate steam, and as the name suggests the machine does this by
having one boiler and element for the brewing water, and then a separate
small steam boiler that heats its water up to a higher temperature for
producing steam and boiling water for tea or americanos, for example.
The temperature in the coffee boiler is usually very finely tuned with
digital controls, allowing easy adjustments of temperature and greater levels
of stability. These machines can undeniably produce coffee as good as any
commercial machine, but they often come with price tags to match.
ESPRESSO GRINDERS
A grinder suitable for use with an espresso machine will need to do two key
things: it must be able to grind the coffee finely enough to make good
espresso, and it must be easily adjustable to make very small changes in the
grind size.
More expensive grinders tend to have better control over the grind
setting, and a more powerful motor inside, which will be quieter. At the top
end are the burr grinders with cutting discs inside, which produce fewer very
tiny pieces of coffee that can add bitterness to the cup.
Many people who are passionate about espresso end up with a small, basic
commercial grinder, rather than a top-end domestic model. However, there
are good domestic machines out there. Ideally, try to find a grinder described
as ‘grind to order’, which means that it does not have a chamber to store large
quantities of ground coffee, but is instead designed to dispense the grounds
straight into the basket in the brew handle.
A WORD OF ADVICE
A great espresso machine can be a beautiful object, a satisfying tool and a technical marvel but
it will be a waste of money if you are pairing it with anything but an excellent coffee grinder.
I would always recommend upgrading your coffee grinder first, rather than your espresso
machine. A good grinder and a thermoblock machine will make better coffee than a cheap
grinder and a top-of-theline dual-boiler espresso machine. Spending money on a grinder gives
a greater return on investment when it comes to how good your coffee will taste at home.
ESPRESSO-BASED DRINKS
Whether they are long, short, milky or dark, there is a wide variety of coffee drinks that start with
an espresso as their base.
ESPRESSO
There are many definitions for what makes an espresso an espresso, some
extremely precise and some more general. I would define an espresso as a
small, strong drink made using finely ground coffee under high water
pressure. I would also add that an espresso should have crema. More
precisely, I would say the ratio of the weight of ground coffee to the weight of
the finished beverage is about 1:2. I would rather have an open definition and
treat espresso as a broad church, than be overly prescriptive about what is
right and wrong.
RISTRETTO
This translates from the Italian as ‘restricted’ and the idea is to produce an
even smaller and stronger cup of coffee than an espresso. This is done by
using less brewing water for the same amount of ground coffee. The grind of
the coffee should be finer so the brew time remains long enough to extract all
the desirable aromatics from the coffee.
LUNGO
The lungo, or ‘long’ coffee, was until recently considered deeply
unfashionable in the speciality coffee world. It was usually brewed using an
espresso machine but with two or three times the amount of water to the
same weight of coffee to make a much longer drink. The resulting cup was
much weaker and, while a longer-lasting experience for the consumer, it was
considered inferior due to the lack of body and mouthfeel. In fairness, most
coffee brewed this way is terrible, and tastes very bitter and ashy.
However, recently there has been a movement within the speciality coffee
industry to brew lighter roasted coffees this way, resulting in a complex and
balanced brew that I think can be delicious. If ever you are struggling to
balance the acidity in an espresso blend, try making it into a longer drink by
adding more water to the same amount of coffee. The grind will need to be
made a little coarser to allow a faster flow and prevent overextraction.
MACCHIATO
This drink takes its name from the idea of ‘marking’ or ‘staining’ an espresso
with some milk foam. In Italy it is not unusual to see a busy barista line up
several cups of espresso on the bar for the customers. If one of the customers
likes just a drop of milk in their drink, it is important to add a small dollop of
milk foam as well to mark which cup it is. If you pour just a little milk into a
freshly made espresso it will disappear under the crema, and you won’t be
able to spot it.
In the last decade or so, many quality-focused coffee shops have done
something quite different with the drink. They have turned a macchiato into
an espresso topped up with foamed milk. This is often done at the request of
the customer, who wants a longer, weaker and sweeter drink. Sometimes,
however, it is done because the barista likes to show off and pour latte art in
very small cups.
To further confuse matters, Starbucks have a drink called a Caramel
Macchiato. This is an entirely different drink, much closer to a caffe latte that
has been ‘marked’ or ‘stained’ by caramel syrup. This has created some
customer confusion, especially in North America, so it is now common to see
coffee shops refer to what they offer as a ‘traditional macchiato’.
CAPPUCCINO
There remain a great many myths around the cappuccino. One to get out of
the way quickly is that the name has nothing to do with the hoods of monks’
robes, nor the bald spot on their heads. The original name for the drink was a
kapuziner, and it was a Viennese drink in the 19th century. It was a small
brewed coffee mixed with milk or cream until it attained the same shade of
brown as the Capuchin monks’ robes. Essentially the name implies the
strength of the drink.
Another recent myth surrounding the cappuccino is the rule of thirds. The
rule of thirds is passed around to this day, and describes a traditional
cappuccino as being one-third espresso, one-third milk and one-third foam. I
was taught this very early on in my coffee career but this recipe has no root in
tradition. I have read quite a few books about coffee and the first reference to
the cappuccino rule of thirds I can find was written in the 1950s. It describes
cappuccino as ‘an espresso mixed with equal amounts of milk and foam.’ This
sentence appears almost verbatim a number of times in the book. The phrase
is a little ambiguous as it could be saying that only the milk and foam are in
equal quantities, or that all three ingredients are. So instead of the recipe
being 1:1:1, the author could easily have meant it was 1:2:2. The 150–175ml
cappuccino made with a single shot of espresso in the ratio of 1:2:2 does have
a long tradition, and is still widely served in much of Italy and the parts of
Europe that haven’t yet succumbed to more generous portions of coffee as
fast-food retail. This drink is also, when well made, absolutely delicious.
I think a great cappuccino is the pinnacle of milk-based espresso drinks. A
rich layer of dense, creamy foam combined with sweet, warming milk and the
flavours of a well-brewed espresso are an absolute delight. The closer to
lukewarm you can enjoy a cappuccino, the sweeter it will be, and I confess
that the best ones I’ve drunk disappear in a few greedy mouthfuls –
impossible if the drink is too warm.
ONE CAPPUCCINO A DAY
There is a tradition in Italy of having just one cappuccino in the morning, then drinking only
espresso for the rest of the day. I believe this is a fascinating example of culture reflecting diet.
Like most southern Europeans, many Italians are lactose intolerant. However, a lactoseintolerant
person can consume a small amount of milk without a problem, hence the daily
cappuccino. A second or third cappuccino, however, even a small Italian one, could result in
some gastric distress, so Italian culture prevents the excessive consumption of milk by making it
a small cultural taboo to keep drinking cappuccino throughout the day.
CAFFE LATTE
This drink did not originate in Italy. When espresso first spread around the
world, it was a bitter, intense and extraordinary coffee experience for most.
For some people, the bitterness was a problem so they added hot milk to
make the drink sweeter and less bitter. The caffe latte was created to satisfy
the customers who wanted the coffee experience with less intensity.
Typically there is more liquid milk in a caffe latte than a cappuccino,
making the coffee flavour less intense. It is also traditional to have less foam
in the milk.
I am always careful to describe the drink as a caffe latte, rather than just a
latte, because many people travel to Italy and if they order a latte there, they
will suffer the humiliation of simply receiving a glass of milk.
FLAT WHITE
Different coffee cultures around the world have contributed different drinks,
and while the argument continues over whether the flat white was invented
in Australia or New Zealand, it is undeniably from Australasia and has been
spread by those who have travelled to Europe and North America to open
businesses there. In the UK, the name first became synonymous with the
offerings of quality-focused cafés, to the point that it was adopted by the
major chains and put on their menus. The drink probably had lowlier origins,
however. By the 1990s it was common, almost everywhere outside Italy, for a
cappuccino to come with an enormous head of dry, meringue-like foam.
Sometimes this would rise up from the top of the cup like a mountain,
carefully dusted with chocolate powder. Many consumers were frustrated to
be sold a cup of coffee that seemed to be mostly air and began to ask for a flat,
white coffee. No foam, just coffee and milk. These became sufficiently part of
the culture there that when people started focusing on quality more and
more, and on better milk texture and latte art, the flat white was remade as
something delicious.
The best description I can offer is that a flat white is like a small, strong
latte. It should have a strong coffee flavour, and is usually made with a double
ristretto or a double espresso, topped up with hot milk to make a 150–175ml
drink. The milk has a little foam added to it, but not very much. This makes it
relatively easy to pour intricate patterns, known as latte art, into the drink.
AMERICANO
The story goes that the American soldiers stationed in Italy after World War
II found the espresso too strong. They often asked for their espresso to be
served with some hot water, or diluted down to the point that it resembled
the coffee they were used to at home. This style of drink picked up the name
‘caffe americano’.
Although it resembles a cup of filter coffee, I think the americano is
somewhat inferior. However, it remains popular with café owners because it
allows them to serve filter coffee-strength brews without having to buy
additional equipment.
My recommendations for making an americano are simple. Pour some
fresh, clean hot water into a cup, then brew a double espresso on top. If your
espresso machine has a steam boiler, it should be able to deliver the hot
water, although if you have not taken water from the machine for a while it
may taste unpleasant. Some people claim that you should never add very hot
water to an espresso, and always brew the espresso on top of the hot water. I
don’t think it makes a great deal of difference, I just find the resulting coffee
is cleaner and looks better.
The one disadvantage of diluting espresso is that you increase the
perceived bitterness slightly. For that reason, as soon as you finish brewing
the americano, I would recommend scooping the crema off the top of the
drink and discarding it. Crema is delightful to look at, but there are many tiny
pieces of ground coffee trapped in the foam so the crema contributes
additional bitterness to the drink. Removing the crema before stirring and
drinking definitely improves the flavour of an americano. (I would also
recommend tasting an espresso after you remove the crema – the difference
in flavour is dramatic. While I actually prefer the taste of an espresso without
crema, I don’t want the extra work and am happy enough to enjoy it as it is.
With an americano, however, I really do think the extra work is worthwhile.)
CORTADO
This is one of the few coffee-based drinks that does not have Italian origins.
In fact, it comes from Spain, most likely Madrid, where it is commonly
served. Traditionally the Spanish brew their espresso slightly longer, often a
little weaker than the Italians. To make a cortado, about 30ml of espresso is
combined with an equal quantity of steamed milk. This is traditionally served
in a glass. The drink seems to have spread and has been reinterpreted in a few
different ways, but this is the basic idea behind it.
A promotional poster for Perles des Indes, established in 1905 by René Honoré. The largest
French importer of coffee, the company roasted more than 2,000kg (4,400lb) of beans daily.
HOME ROASTING
In the past, it was not uncommon for a household to buy raw coffee and roast it at home. Since
the mid-20th century, however, the trend has undeniably favoured convenience. Roasting coffee
at home is fun and relatively inexpensive, although it is a considerable challenge to achieve the
same quality of roasted coffee as the very best commercial roasters.
Home roasting allows you to roast smaller batches of raw coffees than you
might be able to buy roasted, so you can explore a greater number of green
coffees and learn as you go. Like any hobby, there will probably be terrible
failures and surprise successes along the way. It is important to consider
roasting coffee as a new hobby, not as a way to save money on buying roasted
coffee beans. The time invested, as well as the equipment, means that you
should be enjoying the time spent roasting and learning, rather than seeing it
as a chore.
An increasing numbers of companies are selling green coffee online.
While raw coffee does have a longer shelf life than roasted coffee, I would
caution against buying in bulk. Raw coffee does fade over time, and you’d
certainly want to use any beans you buy within 3–6 months.
When it comes to selecting raw coffees, I’d recommend making sure what
you’re buying is genuinely traceable (see sections on individual countries for
guidance). I’d also recommend occasionally buying green coffee from a
company that sells the same coffee roasted. This will allow you to benchmark
your own roasting by comparing your roasted beans with the commercially
roasted beans to see how you are progressing.
HOME-ROASTING MACHINES
It is possible to roast coffee in almost anything that generates enough heat:
you can put raw coffee on a baking sheet and bake it in the oven until
browned, but the results will be pretty terrible. The coffee will be unevenly
roasted, and the part of the coffee in contact with the tray may be scorched.
Roasting this way highlights the need for the movement and agitation of
coffee beans during the roasting process, to get an even result. Roasting
coffee in a wok is possible, but the amount of stirring required quickly makes
the process tiresome and frustrating.
Many people start out with something a bit more sophisticated, like using
a heat gun and agitating the coffee beans regularly as they roast, or using a
modified electric popcorn machine. Second-hand popcorn machines can be
acquired cheaply and do a reasonable job of roasting coffee: they will usually
roast a small batch of coffee quite quickly – in around four or five minutes –
but they don’t do a great job of producing even results at lighter roasts.
People who prefer darker, more developed roasts seem to have more success
with them. Bear in mind that this is not the use these machines were designed
for, and some models may not have enough power to roast coffee properly.
If you really want to roast coffee at home successfully, you will need a
machine specifically designed for the purpose. Start small and decide if you
enjoy the ritual, the regularity of it and the overall process. Starting this way
is easy and fun, and there is no regret if you decide you would rather leave this
part of the process to the professionals.
There are two main types of machine available to the home roaster: hotair
roasters and drum roasters.
HOT-AIR ROASTERS
Hot-air roasters mimic, on a much smaller scale, commercial fluid-bed
roasters (see Types of Coffee Roasters). They work rather like powerful
popcorn poppers: the hot air agitates and moves the beans around in the
roasting chamber to produce an even roast, as well as providing the necessary
heat to turn them brown. You have some level of control over the amount of
heat and the fan speed, so you can speed up or slow down the process as
necessary. Cheaper than drum roasters, these machines are a great starting
point for someone looking to dip a toe in the home roasting process.
Some machines do a better job than others of dealing with the smoke and
smells produced during roasting, but I would still recommend roasting in a
well-ventilated area. However, if you roast outside and it is very cold,
roasting times may be slower than you want.
THE PERFECT ROAST
Ideally, a roast in a hot-air roaster should last for eight to twelve minutes. Drum roasts tend
to be a little slower, more like ten to fifteen minutes, depending on the size of the batch of
coffee. If the resulting coffee tastes very bitter, you may have roasted too dark. If it lacks
flavours and sweetness, you may have roasted too slowly. If it tastes very sour, astringent
and grassy, you have probably roasted the coffee too quickly. A combination of lots of
tasting and a little trial and error is a healthy part of the process and will allow you to
understand your own preferences more and more.
DRUM ROASTERS
Home drum roasters are similar in design to commercial drum roasters, but
they are not built with the same quality and weight of materials. The coffee is
tumbled around in a heated drum, which is designed to keep the beans
moving to allow even browning.
Some drum machines offer more programming functions, allowing you to
create your own roast profiles. The intensity of the heat can be varied
throughout the roast, and the machine can automate the process to allow
easy replication of your favourite roasts.
Like any new hobby, roasting coffee beans at home will have some failures and surprise
successes, but is worth trying if you want to experiment with tasting a range of green coffees.
C
BURUNDI
Coffee came to Burundi in the 1920s under Belgian colonial rule, and from 1933 every peasant
farmer had to cultivate at least fifty coffee trees. When Burundi gained its independence in
1962, coffee production went private. This changed in 1972, along with the political climate, but
since 1991 coffee has slowly been returning to the private sector.
offee growing had been increasing steadily, but the civil war in 1993
caused a precipitous drop in production. Since then, efforts have been
made to increase both production and the value of coffee in Burundi.
Investment in the industry is seen as crucial, as Burundi’s economy has been
shattered by conflict. In 2011 Burundi had one of the lowest per capita
incomes in the world with ninety per cent of the population relying on
subsistence agriculture. Coffee and tea exports combined make up
approximately ninety per cent of total foreign exchange earnings. Coffee
production is recovering, but has not yet reached the levels of the early 1980s.
However, there is hope for coffee in Burundi. With 650,000 families
dependent on the crop, movements towards higher prices through
improvement of quality can only be a good thing. However, the constant fear
of political instability returning looms large.
Burundi’s geography is well suited to coffee. Much of it is mountainous,
providing the necessary altitudes and climates. There are no coffee estates in
Burundi, instead coffee is produced by large numbers of smallholder farmers.
Recently these producers have become more organized, usually centring
around one of the 160 washing stations in the country. Around two-thirds of
these washing stations are under state ownership, the others are privately
owned. Anything from several hundred up to two thousand producers feed
their coffee into each washing station.
Within each region, these stations are grouped together into SOGESTALs
(Sociétés de Gestion des Stations de Lavage), which are effectively
management organizations for groups of washing stations. Development of
quality in recent years has been directed through these organizations, mainly
through the provision of better infrastructure in their regions.
The best coffees from Burundi are fully washed and usually made up of the
Bourbon variety, though other varieties are grown. In many ways there are
similarities between Burundi and its neighbour Rwanda: the countries have
similar altitudes and coffee varieties, and both face the challenges of being
landlocked, which can hinder the rapid export necessary for the raw coffee to
arrive in the consuming countries in good condition. As in Rwanda, coffees in
Burundi are also susceptible to the potato defect.
TRACEABILITY
Until recently, the coffees from all the washing stations within each
SOGESTAL were blended together. This meant that coffees exported from
Burundi were only traceable back to their SOGESTAL, which is effectively
their region of origin.
In 2008 Burundi began to embrace the speciality coffee sector, allowing
more direct and traceable purchasing. In 2011 there was a coffee quality
competition in Burundi called the Prestige Cup, a precursor to the more
established Cup of Excellence. The lots from individual washing stations
were kept separate and ranked on quality, then they were sold at auction with
their traceability intact. This means that we are likely to see more unique and
interesting coffees coming out of Burundi in the future and there is great
potential for quality.
Coffee pickers bring their harvest to be washed in Kayanza, Burundi.
TASTE PROFILE
Great coffees from Burundi can have complex berry fruit flavours, and a great juicy quality.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 11,179,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 351,000
Burundi is such a small country that it doesn’t really have distinct growing areas. Coffee grows
right across the country, wherever there is suitable land and altitude. The country is divided into
provinces, and coffee farms are clustered around the washing stations (wet mills) there.
BUBANZA
This region is in the northwest of Burundi.
Altitude: average of 1,350m (4,400ft)
Harvest: April–July
Varieties: Bourbon, Jackson, Mibrizi and some SL varieties
BUJUMBURA RURAL
Located in western Burundi.
Altitude: average of 1,400m (4,600ft)
Harvest: April–July
Varieties: Bourbon, Jackson, Mibrizi and some SL varieties
BURURI
This southwestern province contains three of Burundi’s national parks.
Altitude: average of 1,550m (5,050ft)
Harvest: April–July
Varieties: Bourbon, Jackson, Mibrizi and some SL varieties
CIBITOKE
This province is in the very northwest of Burundi, close to the border with the Democratic
Republic of Congo.
Altitude: average of 1,450m (4,750ft)
Harvest: April–July
Varieties: Bourbon, Jackson, Mibrizi and some SL varieties
GITEGA
This central region contains one of the two state-owned dry mills, used for the final stages of
preparation and quality control before export.
Altitude: average of 1,450m (4,750ft)
Harvest: April–July
Varieties: Bourbon, Jackson, Mibrizi and some SL varieties
KARUZI
This region is slightly west of central Burundi.
Altitude: average of 1,600m (5,200ft)
Harvest: April–July
Varieties: Bourbon, Jackson, Mibrizi and some SL varieties
KAYANZA
This northern region, near the Rwandan border, has the second highest number of stations.
Altitude: average of 1,700m (5,600ft)
Harvest: April–July
Varieties: Bourbon, Jackson, Mibrizi and some SL varieties
KIRUNDO
This region is in the northernmost part of the country.
Altitude: average of 1,500m (4,900ft)
Harvest: April–July
Varieties: Bourbon, Jackson, Mibrizi and some SL varieties
MAKAMBA
One of the most southerly provinces in Burundi.
Altitude: average of 1,550m (5,050ft)
Harvest: April–July
Varieties: Bourbon, Jackson, Mibrizi and some SL varieties
MURAMVYA
A small region in the central part of the country.
Altitude: average of 1,800m (5,900ft)
Harvest: April–July
Varieties: Bourbon, Jackson, Mibrizi and some SL varieties
MUYINGA
This region borders Tanzania in the northeastern part of the country.
Altitude: average of 1,600m (5,200ft)
Harvest: April–July
Varieties: Bourbon, Jackson, Mibrizi and some SL varieties
MWARO
Another small region in the middle of the country.
Altitude: Average of 1,700m (5,600ft)
Harvest: April–July
Varieties: Bourbon, Jackson, Mibrizi and some SL varieties
NGOZI
The most concentrated region for coffee production, in the north of the country, with 25 per cent
of the washing stations.
Altitude: average of 1,650m (5,400ft)
Harvest: April–July
Varieties: Bourbon, Jackson, Mibrizi and some SL varieties
RUTANA
This region is in southern Burundi, west of Mount Kiziki. It has one washing station.
Number of washing stations: 1
Altitude: average of 1,550m (5,050ft)
Harvest: April–July
Varieties: Bourbon, Jackson, Mibrizi and some SL varieties
T
DEMOCRATIC REPUBLIC OF THE CONGO
Coffee was introduced to the Democratic Republic of the Congo (DRC) in 1881 from Liberia, but
it wasn’t until Belgian colonists discovered a new variety growing there in 1898 that agricultural
production began. Despite its tumultuous history, the DRC is now considered an up-and-coming
producer of speciality coffees. Many have high hopes for its potential in the future, but
significant challenges have yet to be faced.
he plant discovered in Belgian Congo in 1898 was a variety of Coffea
canephora, which the colonists named ‘Robusta’ to promote its hardy
nature. Coffee production started to gain momentum on plantations
under the brutal rule of the Belgian colonists. The vast majority of coffee was
produced on these estates, rather than by smallholders, until independence
in 1960. Until this point, agriculture, including coffee production, was well
funded and supported, with 26 research stations in the country and 300
professionals working inside the Institut National pour l’Etude Agronomique
du Congo Belge (the national institute for agricultural studies in the Belgian
Congo).
After independence in 1960, government funding was reduced and in the
1970s the plantations began to decline, in part due to the marginalization of
non-nationals and in part due to a lack of infrastructure. By 1987, only 14 per
cent of the coffee produced in the DRC came from estates, and by 1996 only
two per cent. However, coffee production had boomed in the 1970s and 1980s
as a result of the free market, and the government had tried to sustain the
industry in the late 1980s by reducing tariffs on exports.
The 1990s was a brutal decade for the country and the coffee sector. The
First and Second Congo Wars, spanning the period from 1996 to 2003,
triggered a decline in production, which was further exacerbated by the
spread of coffee wilt disease. The high production levels of the late 1980s and
early 1990s dropped to less than half. Coffee wilt primarily affected only
Robusta production, but this made up the vast majority of the coffee
produced in the DRC.
Infrastructure in the country still poses a huge challenge. There are hopes
that coffee can be a part of the economic revival of the DRC, as it struggles to
move past the recent violence. Both the government and outside NGOs (nongovernmental
organizations) have invested heavily in the sector and there is
increasing interest in the country’s potential for excellent coffee. The soil,
altitude and climate of parts of the DRC lend themselves to the production of
truly exceptional coffees, and they are worth seeking out and supporting.
A man washes ripe coffee beans in Kivu. Coffee from the DRC disappeared from the international
coffee market for many years, but attempts to revitalize production are underway.
TRACEABILITY
Almost all coffee in the DRC is produced by groups of smallholders or
cooperatives. It is extremely unlikely that you will find a single estate, and
less likely still that they will produce excellent coffee.
Sacks of Congolese coffee being prepared for export in 1911. At the time, the country was under
Belgian colonial rule.
TASTE PROFILE
The very best coffees from the DRC have a delightful fruitiness, are sweet and can be
pleasingly full-bodied.
GROWING REGIONS
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 82,243,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 335,000
Some regions of the DRC mostly grow Robusta, others mostly grow Arabica, and some grow a
mixture of the two.
KIVU
Kivu comprises three provinces:
Nord-Kivu, Sud-Kivu and Maniema, all surrounding Lake Kivu, after which the region is named.
The higher altitude areas in Kivu grow the best coffee in the country, mainly Arabica, so these are
worth seeking out.
Altitude: 1,460–2,000m (4,800–6,560ft)
Harvest: October–September
Varieties: Mostly Bourbon
ORIENTAL
A small amount of Arabica is also grown in this eastern region of the country, but it is mostly
Robusta here.
Altitude: 1,400–2,200m (4,600–7,200ft)
Harvest: October–September
Varieties: Robusta and Bourbon
KONGO CENTRAL
Formerly Bas-Congo, this very westernmost point of the country does produce some coffee, but it
is all Robusta.
Harvest: March–June
Varieties: Robusta
EQUATEUR
This is another large producing area in the country, situated in the northwest. It is mostly Robusta
here.
Harvest: October–January
Varieties: Robusta
A woman on her way to work in a coffee plantation near Kivu Lake. Arabica from the Highlands of
Kivu was once renowned as some of the best in the world.
E
ETHIOPIA
Of all the coffee-producing countries, Ethiopia is perhaps the most compelling. Its fascination
stems not only from the unusual, astonishing coffees it produces, but from the mystery that
shrouds so much of it. The explosively floral and fruity coffees from Ethiopia have opened many
a coffee professional’s eyes to the diversity of flavour that coffee can have.
thiopia is referred to as the birthplace of coffee, although this should come
with some caveats. It is likely Coffea arabica first appeared in southern
Sudan, but it only flourished once it spread into Ethiopia. It was here that
it was first consumed by humans, initially as a fruit rather than a beverage.
Yemen was the first country to grow coffee as a crop, but it had been
harvested from the wild in Ethiopia long before.
Coffee was probably first exported from Ethiopia in the 1600s. Interest
from European traders was often rebuffed and it then waned as coffee
plantations began to appear in Yemen, Java and ultimately the Americas.
Coffee production in Ethiopia at the time was essentially the harvest of wild
coffee trees that grew in the districts of Kaffa and Buno, rather than from
plantations.
ETHIOPIA’S PRODUCTION SYSTEMS
Ethiopia’s coffees can be divided into three main categories, depending on their method of
production.
FOREST COFFEES
These come from the wild coffee trees grown mostly in the southwest of the country. These
trees usually have a mix of natural shade plants around them, and themselves are a broad
mixture of different varieties. The productivity and yield of these trees is low compared to
more purposefully cultivated plants.
GARDEN COFFEES
These are coffees from trees typically planted around a homestead or other dwelling. There
is less natural shade and more management of the shade trees, such as regular pruning to
prevent too much shading. Many producers use some fertilizer on their plants. This type of
coffee makes up the bulk of Ethiopia’s production.
PLANTATION COFFEES
These coffees come from trees grown intensively on large farms. Standard agricultural
practices are used here, including pruning, mulching, use of fertilizers and the selection of
disease-resistant varieties.
Interest returned to Ethiopian coffee in the early 1800s, when there is a
record of the export of one hundred quintals of coffee from Enerea, an area of
modern-day Ethiopia. In the 19th century, there were two common grades of
Ethiopian coffee: Harari (cultivated around the town of Harrar) and
Abyssinia (grown in the wild in the rest of the country). For this reason
Harrar has a long-standing reputation for being desirable and of high quality
(which it does not always earn).
The 1950s were a time of increased structure in the Ethiopian coffee
industry and a new grading system was introduced. In 1957 the National
Coffee Board of Ethiopia was formed. The overthrow of Emperor Haile
Selassie brought change in the 1970s, however. This wasn’t a peasant
uprising, more a coup from the elite class tired of famine and conflict. The
vacuum of power was filled by the military, which was strongly influenced by
socialist ideals. ntil that point the country had been close, in some ways, to a
feudal system of government. Among the new ideals was the redistribution of
land, and the government quickly began to nationalize it. Some argue that
this move was hugely beneficial to the population, increasing the earnings of
the rural poor by up to fifty per cent. Strict Marxist rules prevented land
ownership or hired labour, and this had a huge impact on the coffee industry.
Large-scale farming was abandoned and Ethiopia went back to harvesting its
coffee from the wild. The 1980s was a decade of famine, affecting eight
million people and killing one million of them.
Ethiopia is commonly accepted as the birthplace of coffee. This Ethiopian woman performs an
age-old coffee ceremony in Wollo, Lalibella.
THE MOVE TOWARDS DEMOCRACY
In 1991 the Ethiopian Peoples’ Revolutionary Democratic Front overthrew
the Military Junta. This began a process of liberalization and moved the
country towards democracy. International markets opened up for Ethiopia,
but with them came the effects of fluctuating market prices. Coffee farmers
in Ethiopia in particular have had to cope with large, uncontrollable price
swings. This has given rise to the formation of cooperatives, offering support
to their members, such as funding, market information and transport.
Coffee beans are hand-graded by women at a factory in Ethiopia. The range of flavours found in
Ethiopian coffee beans is broad, owing to the variable climates of different growing regions.
THE ETHIOPIAN COMMODITY EXCHANGE
The largest change to the trade of Ethiopian coffee in recent years, and one of
great concern to speciality coffee buyers, was the introduction of the
Ethiopian Commodity Exchange (ECX) in 2008. The ECX was created for
various different commodities in Ethiopia with the aim of creating an
efficient trading system that protected both sellers and buyers alike.
However, the system frustrated those who wished to buy a distinct, traceable
product rather than a commoditized one. Coffees were delivered to the ECX
warehouse where they were allocated a numerical denomination of regional
origin for washed coffees (from 1–10). All natural-process coffees were
marked 11. The coffees were then graded for quality and assigned a number
from 1–9, or labelled UG for ungraded.
This process stripped the coffee of its exact traceability before auction,
but on the positive side farmers did receive payment for their coffee sooner
than they had before. The system also restricted which coffees could be
offered on the international market and increased the financial transparency
in contracts.
Today there are increasing opportunities to work outside the constraints
of the ECX model, and more and more high-quality and traceable coffees are
reaching consumers abroad.
TRACEABILITY
It is possible to find Ethiopian coffees from a single estate, though they are
relatively rare. Traceability is more likely to lead back to a specific
cooperative. However, a coffee roaster may simply have bought a coffee that
had come through the ECX and it could still be astonishing despite its lack of
transparency. These coffees have so much to offer, so I would recommend
finding a roaster whose coffees you already enjoy and asking them for
guidance on what is excellent.
Once difficult to trace, the quality and provenance of coffee is becoming more accessible. This
allows consumers to make informed choices about where and how their coffee is harvested.
TASTE PROFILE
The flavours of Ethiopian coffees are notably diverse – from citrus, often bergamot, and
florals through to candied fruit or even tropical fruit flavours. The best washed coffees can be
incredibly elegant, complex and delicious and the best naturally processed ones can be
wildly fruity, and enchantingly unusual.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 102,374,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2013: 6,600,000
The growing regions of Ethiopia are among the most recognizable names in coffee, and are used
to sell the coffee today and probably will be in the foreseeable future. The genetic potential of
the indigenous and wild varieties of Arabica make the future of coffee in Ethiopia an exciting one,
too.
SIDAMA
Sidama is one of the three regions (along with Harrar and Yirgacheffe) that the Ethiopian
government trademarked in 2004 to bring wider recognition to their distinctive coffees. It
produces a mixture of washed and naturally processed coffees that are incredibly popular among
those who enjoy a fruity and intensely aromatic cup.
The region was named after the Sidama people, but it is often referred to in coffee as Sidamo. In
recent years, there has been some movement to reject the name Sidamo, as it is felt to be
derogatory. However, it is something of a brand and deeply embedded in the industry. For this
reason, both Sidamo and Sidama are used to describe coffees from the region. This region grows
some of the highest coffee in Ethiopia.
Altitude: 1,400–2,200m (4,600–7,200ft)
Harvest: October–January
Varieties: Heirloom varieties
LIMU
While it does not have the same reputation as Sidama and Yirgacheffe, Limu still produces some
astonishing coffee. This region’s producers are mostly smallholders, but there are some large
government-owned plantations in the area.
Altitude: 1,400–2,200m (4,600–7,200ft)
Harvest: November–January
Varieties: Heirloom varieties
JIMA
This region, in the southwest, produces a large portion of Ethiopia’s coffee. Coffees from this
region have recently been a little eclipsed by those from other parts of the country but they are
definitely worth investigating. The name of this region can also be written as ‘Jimmah’, ‘Jimma’ or
‘Djimmah’.
Altitude: 1,400–2,000m (4,600–6,600ft)
Harvest: November–January
Varieties: Heirloom varieties
GHIMBI/LEKEMPTI
The regions surrounding the two towns of Ghimbi and Lekempti are often combined into one,
and a roaster may use one name or the other, or sometimes both. Lekempti is the capital city, but
a coffee that is described by this name could actually come from Ghimbi over 100km (62 miles)
away.
Altitude: 1,500–2,100m (4,900–6,900ft)
Harvest: February–April
Varieties: Heirloom varieties
HARRAR
This is one of the oldest producing regions, surrounding the small town of Harrar. Coffees from
this region are quite distinctly different, and are often grown in environments requiring extra
irrigation. Harrar has maintained a strong reputation for many years, although the naturally
processed coffees can veer between an unclean, woody earthiness to a more explicit blueberry
fruit flavour. The coffees are often so unusual that they are remembered fondly by those who work
in the industry as the coffees that opened their eyes to the diversity of flavours possible within a
cup.
Altitude: 1,500–2,100m (4,900–6,900ft)
Harvest: October–February
Varieties: Heirloom varieties
YIRGACHEFFE
The coffees from this region are, in many ways, truly unique. So many of the great washed coffees
from Yirgacheffe are explosively aromatic, full of citrus and floral notes and have a light and
elegant body, so this is undeniably one of the greatest and most interesting regions for growing
coffee. The best coffees from this region fetch rightfully high premiums, and while they can
remind some people more of a cup of Earl Grey tea than of a cup of coffee, they are absolutely
worth seeking out. There are naturally processed coffees produced in this region too, which can
also be exceptionally interesting and enjoyable.
Altitude: 1,750–2,200m (5,750–7,200ft)
Harvest: October–January
Varieties: Heirloom varieties
I
KENYA
Despite the fact that neighbouring Ethiopia is considered the home of coffee, Kenya did not
start production until relatively late. The earliest documented import of coffee dates to 1893
when French missionaries brought coffee trees from Réunion. Most agree that the variety of
coffee they brought was Bourbon. It yielded its first crop in 1896.
nitially coffee was produced on large estates under British colonial rule,
and the resulting crop was sold in London. In 1933 the Coffee Act was
passed, establishing a Kenyan Coffee Board and moving the sale of coffee
back to Kenya. In 1934 the auction system was established and it is still in use
today; a year later protocols were created for the grading of coffee to help
improve quality.
Not long after the Mau Mau uprising in the early 1950s, an agricultural act
was passed to create family holdings that combined subsistence farming with
the production of cash crops for additional income. This act was known as the
Swynnerton Plan, named after an official in the Department of Agriculture.
This marked the start of the transfer of coffee production from the British to
the Kenyans. The effect on the production of smallholdings was significant,
with total income rising from £5.2 million in 1955 to £14 million in 1964.
Notably, coffee production accounted for 55 per cent of this increase.
Kenya gained independence in 1963, and now consistently produces
extremely high-quality coffees from a variety of sources. The research and
development in Kenya is considered excellent, and many farmers are highly
educated in coffee production. The Kenyan auction system should help to
reward quality-focused producers with better prices, but while buyers are
paying high prices for the excellent coffees, corruption within the system may
prevent those premiums filtering back to the farmers.
Kenyan women carry buckets of freshly picked ripe coffee cherries to be sorted and processed.
GRADING
Kenya uses a grading system for all of its exported coffee, regardless of
whether the lot is traceable or not. As in many other countries, the grading
system uses a combination of bean size and quality. The definitions clearly
define size and, to some extent, they also assume quality is linked to the size
of the beans. While this is often true – the AA lots often being the superior
coffees – I have recently seen harvests where the AB lots appeared to be more
complex and of higher quality than many of the AA lots.
E – These are the elephant beans, the very largest size, so lots tend to be
relatively small.
AA – This is a more common grade for the larger screen sizes (see Sizing and
Grading), above screen size 18, or 7.22mm. Typically, these fetch the highest
prices.
AB – This grade is a combination of A (screen size 16, or 6.80mm) and B
(screen size 15, or 6.20mm). This grade accounts for around thirty per cent of
Kenya’s annual production.
PB – This is the grade for peaberries, where a single bean has grown inside
the coffee cherry instead of the more usual two.
C – This is the grading size below the AB category. It is unusual to see this
grade in a high-quality coffee.
TT – A smaller grade again, normally comprising the smaller beans removed
from AA, AB and E grades. In density sorting, the lightest beans are usually
TT grade.
T – The smallest grade, often made up of chips and broken pieces.
MH/ML – These initials stand for Mbuni Heavy and Mbuni Light. Mbuni is
the name used for naturally processed coffees. These are considered low
quality, often containing underripe or overripe beans, and they sell for a very
low price. They account for around seven per cent of the annual production.
TRACEABILITY
Kenya’s coffee is grown both on large estates, and by smallholders who feed
their coffee into their local washing station. This means it is possible to get
extremely traceable coffees from the single estates, but in recent years the
higher-quality coffees have increasingly come from the smallholders.
Typically what one might find is a particular lot from a washing station that
will still carry a size grading (such as AA), though that lot may have come
from a group of several hundred farmers. These washing stations (or
factories as they are known) play a role in the quality of the final product, so
these coffees are definitely worth seeking out.
An aerial view of a coffee plantation in Kenya. The country consistently produces beans of a very
high quality, from a variety of sources that include large estates and smallholders.
Women grade beans according to their size and quality at a coffee factory in Komothai, in Ruiri,
Kenya.
KENYAN VARIETIES
Two particular Kenyan varieties attract great interest from the speciality coffee industry.
These are named SL-28 and SL-34, and are among the forty experimental varieties produced
as part of the research led by Guy Gibson at Scott Laboratories. These make up the majority
of high-quality coffee from Kenya, but they are susceptible to leaf rust.
A lot of work has been done to produce rust-resistant varieties in Kenya. Ruiru 11 was the
first to be considered a success by the Kenyan Coffee Board, although it was not warmly
received by speciality coffee buyers. More recently, they have released a variety called
Batian. There remains some scepticism towards its cup quality after the disappointment of
Ruiru, although quality seems to be improving and there is more positivity around the
potential of Batian to have great cup quality in the future.
TASTE PROFILE
Kenyan coffees are renowned for their bright, complex berry/fruit qualities as well as their
sweetness and intense acidity.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 48,460,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 783,000
Central Kenya produces most of the nation’s coffee, and the best Kenyan coffees come from this
part of the country. There is growing interest in the coffees being produced in Western Kenya, in
the Kisii, Trans-Nzoia, Keiyo and Marakwet regions.
NYERI
The central region of Nyeri is home to the extinct volcano of Mount Kenya. The red soils here
produce some of the best coffee in Kenya. Agriculture is hugely important to the area and coffee
is one of the main crops. Cooperatives of smallholder producers are common, rather than large
estates. The coffee trees in Nyeri produce two crops a year and the main crop tends to produce
higher-quality lots.
Altitude: 1,200–2,300m (3,900–7,500ft)
Harvest: October–December (main crop), June–August (fly crop)
Varieties: SL-28, SL-34, Ruiru 11, Batian
MURANG’A
Around 100,000 farmers produce coffee in the Murang’a region, within the Central Province. This
inland region was one of the first to be settled by missionaries, who were prevented from settling
around the coast by the Portuguese. This is another region that benefits from the volcanic soil,
and also has more smallholders than estates.
Altitude: 1,350–1,950m (4,400–6,400ft)
Harvest: October–December (main crop), June–August (fly crop)
Varieties: SL-28, SL-34, Ruiru 11, Batian
KIRINYAGA
The eastern neighbour of Nyeri, this county also benefits from volcanic soils. The coffee tends to
be produced by smallholders and the washing stations have been producing some very highquality
lots that are well worth trying.
Altitude: 1,300–1,900m (4,300–6,200ft)
Harvest: October–December (main crop), June–August (fly crop)
Varieties: SL-28, SL-34, Ruiru 11, Batian
EMBU
Near Mount Kenya, this region is named after the town of Embu. Approximately seventy per cent
of the population are small-scale farmers, and the most popular cash crops are tea and coffee.
Almost all of the coffee comes from smallholders and the region is a relatively small producer.
Altitude: 1,300–1,900m (4,300–6,200ft)
Harvest: October–December (main crop), June–August (fly crop)
Varieties: SL-28, SL-34, Ruiru 11, Batian, K7
MERU
Coffee is grown on the slopes of Mount Kenya and in the Nyambene Hills, mostly by smallholders.
The name refers to both the region and the Meru people who inhabit it. In the 1930s, these
people were among the first Kenyans to produce coffee, as a result of the Devonshire White
Paper of 1923, which asserted the importance of African interests in the country.
Altitude: 1,300–1,950m (4,300–6,400ft)
Harvest: October–December (main crop), June–August (fly crop)
Varieties: SL-28, SL-34, Ruiru 11, Batian, K7
KIAMBU
This central region’s production is dominated by large estates. However, the spread of
urbanization has seen the number of estates decline as owners have found it more profitable to
sell their land for development. Coffees from the region are often named for places within it, such
as Thika, Ruiru and Limuru. Many of the estates are owned by multinational companies, which
means that farming practices are often mechanized with an eye towards higher yields rather than
quality. There are a reasonable number of smallholders in the region, too.
Altitude: 1,500–2,200m (4,900–7,200ft)
Harvest: October–December (main crop), June–August (fly crop)
Varieties: SL-28, SL-34, Ruiru 11, Batian
MACHAKOS
This is a relatively small county in the centre of the country, named after the town of Machakos.
Coffee production here is a mixture of estates and smallholders.
Altitude: 1,400–1,850m (4,600–6,050ft)
Harvest: October–December (main crop), June–August (fly crop)
Varieties: SL-28, SL-34
NAKURU
This region, in the centre of the country, has some of the highest-growing coffee in Kenya.
However, some trees suffer from ‘dieback’ at high altitudes and stop producing. The region is
named after the town of Nakuru. Coffee is produced by a mixture of estates and smallholders,
although production is relatively low.
Altitude: 1,850–2,200m (6,050–7,200ft)
Harvest: October–December (main crop), June–August (fly crop)
Varieties: SL-28, SL-34, Ruiru 11, Batian
KISII
This region is in the southwest of the country, not far from Lake Victoria. It is a relatively small
region and most of the coffee comes from cooperatives of small producers.
Altitude: 1,450–1,800m (4,750–5,900ft)
Harvest: October–December (main crop), June–August (fly crop)
Varieties: SL-28, SL-34, Blue Mountain, K7
TRANS-NZOIA, KEIYO & MARAKWET
This relatively small area of production in Western Kenya has seen some growth in recent years.
The slopes of Mount Elgon provide some altitude, and most of the coffee comes from estates.
Coffee is often planted to diversify farms that once focused on maize or dairy.
Altitude: 1,500–1,900m (4,900–6,200ft)
Harvest: October–December (main crop), June–August (fly crop)
Varieties: Ruiru 11, Batian, SL-28, SL-34
D
MALAWI
It seems that coffee was introduced to Malawi in the late 1800s. One claim states that a single
tree taken from the Edinburgh Botanical Gardens was brought to the country in 1878 by John
Buchnan, a Scottish missionary. It first took root in southern Malawi, in the Blantyre region, and
by 1900 annual coffee production was at 1,000 tonnes (1,100 tons).
espite its auspicious start, coffee production collapsed not long after due
to a combination of poorly maintained soils, pests and diseases, and the
competition from the increasingly dominant production of Brazil.
For most of the first part of the 20th century there was little African
ownership of the large coffee farms as the country was under British colonial
rule. However, the cooperative movement started in 1946 and coffee
production grew dramatically in the 1950s. While they looked like they might
prove to be successful, all the cooperatives were dissolved in 1971 due to
political interference. Coffee production in Malawi peaked in the 1990s at
7,000 tonnes (7,700 tons), and has since shrunk back to around 1,500 tonnes
(1,650 tons) a year.
Despite the fact that it is landlocked, Malawi has built a strong agricultural
export economy. In the case of coffee, some attribute its success to the lack of
government interference in export, allowing direct relationships between
sellers and buyers. However, for a long time quality was not of particular
focus. Grading was a very simple system of Grade 1 and Grade 2, although in
recent years there has been movement towards the AA-style grading system
used throughout Africa.
The coffee varieties grown in Malawi certainly cover the extremes of the
spectrum. There has been quite a lot of Geisha variety planted, the same
variety that has generated so much interest in Central America. However,
there is also quite a lot of Catimor throughout the country, a disease-resistant
variety that is generally of much lower quality.
TRACEABILITY
Coffee in the south of Malawi is generally produced on large-scale,
commercial estates and in the central and northern regions by smallholder
farmers. Therefore it is possible to trace coffees back to a single farm, or to a
large group of producers. Generally there should be excellent coffees
available from both.
TASTE PROFILE
The coffees can be quite sweet and clean, though rarely as explosively fruity and complex as
other coffees from East Africa.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 18,090,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 18,000
Coffees from Malawi are rarely identified by their regions, and the regions themselves could be
considered as defined pockets of coffee growing, rather than definable areas with distinct
characteristics determined by the local terroir and microclimate.
CHITIPA DISTRICT
This area has a reputation of growing some of the best coffee in Malawi. It is close to the Songwe
River, which provides a natural border between Malawi and Tanzania to the north. This area is
home to the large Misuku Hills Cooperative.
Altitude: 1,700–2,000m (5,600–6,600ft)
Harvest: April–September
Varieties: Agaro, Geisha, Catimor, Mundo Novo, Caturra
RUMPHI DISTRICT
This area is located in the north of the country, close to Lake Malawi in the eastern part of the
Nyika National Park. There are several areas here with clusters of producers, such as Chakak,
Mphachi, Salawe, Junji and VunguVungu. The Phoka Hills and Viphya North cooperatives are
located here.
Altitude: 1,200–2,500m (3,900–8,100ft)
Harvest: April–September
Varieties: Agaro, Geisha, Catimor, Mundo Novo, Caturra
NORTH VIPHYA
This region covers part of the North Viphya Plateau, which is separated from Nkhata Bay
Highlands by the Lizunkhumi river valley.
Altitude: 1,200–1,500m (3,900–4,900ft)
Harvest: April–September
Varieties: Agaro, Geisha, Catimor, Mundo Novo, Caturra
SOUTHEAST MZIMBA
This region is named for the city of Mzimba, and there are several valley and river systems running
through it.
Altitude: 1,200–1,700m (3,900–5,600ft)
Harvest: April–September
Varieties: Agaro, Geisha, Catimor, Mundo Novo, Caturra
NKHATA BAY HIGHLANDS
This region is just to the east of the regional capital city of Mzuzu.
Altitude: 1,000–2,000m (3,300–6,600ft)
Harvest: April–September
Varieties: Agaro, Geisha, Catimor, Mundo Novo, Caturra
Coffee plantations in Malawi have a strong agricultural export economy and most coffee can be
traced to a single farm.
T
RWANDA
German missionaries first brought coffee to Rwanda in 1904, but the country did not produce
enough to begin exports until 1917. After World War I, the League of Nations Mandate stripped
Germany of its colonial rule over Rwanda, and handed it to the Belgians. This is why, historically,
most of Rwanda’s coffee has been exported to Belgium.
he first coffee trees were planted at the Mibirizi mission in Cyangugu
province, and the place gives its name to the first Rwandan coffee variety,
a natural mutation of Bourbon. Gradually coffee cultivation spread into
the Kivu region and ultimately the rest of Rwanda. In the 1930s, coffee
became a compulsory crop for many producers around the country,
mirroring the Belgian colonial approach in neighbouring Burundi.
The Belgians strictly controlled exports and enforced high taxes on the
growers. This pushed Rwanda towards producing high volumes of lowquality
coffee, which sold for low prices. However, the fact that Rwanda
exported so little gave coffee an oversized impact and a sense of importance
for the farmers. There was little infrastructure to allow the production of
quality coffee, not even a single washing station.
By the 1990s, coffee was Rwanda’s most valuable export, but the events of
the decade would decimate the coffee industry. In 1994, the widespread
genocide in the country claimed nearly one million lives, and had a massive
impact on the coffee industry. This was compounded by worldwide coffee
prices falling to a very low level.
COFFEE’S ROLE IN RWANDA’S RECOVERY
Coffee was to become a symbol of positivity as Rwanda got back on its feet
following the genocide. As foreign aid and interest streamed into the country,
there was a strong focus on the coffee sector. Washing stations were built and
there was a determined drive towards producing higher-quality coffee. The
government took a more open approach to the coffee trade, and speciality
coffee buyers from around the world have shown a strong interest in the
country’s coffees. Rwanda is the only African country to have hosted a Cup of
Excellence competition, a project to find the very best lots and to bring them
to market through an online auction system.
The first washing station was built in 2004 with assistance from the
United States Agency for International Development (USAID). Many more
followed and the number has grown dramatically in recent years with around
three hundred in operation today. The PEARL project (Partnership for
Enhancing Agriculture in Rwanda through Linkages) was successful in
helping to spread knowledge and train young agronomists. It has since
become the SPREAD project (Sustaining Partnerships to enhance Rural
Enterprise and Agribusiness Development) and both projects have focused
their efforts in the Butare region.
Rwanda is known as the ‘land of a thousand hills’ and certainly has the
altitude and weather to grow great coffee. However, there is the problem of
widespread soil depletion and transport still poses a challenge, often adding
great expense to production costs.
When worldwide coffee prices increased around 2010, it was a challenge
in Rwanda (and much of the rest of the world) to find suitable incentives to
keep quality high. When the market pays high prices, there is little reason to
spend money to increase quality, as even low-quality coffee is sufficiently
profitable. However, recently the quality of Rwandan coffees has been
excellent. Rwanda does grow and export a small amount of Robusta, but most
of its output is fully washed Arabica.
At a coffee washing station in Butare, a worker keeps the coffee cherries moving as the depulping
machine separates the seeds from the fruit flesh.
THE POTATO DEFECT
This is a particular and unusual defect found only in coffees from Burundi and Rwanda. It is
caused by an unknown bacteria entering the cherry’s skin and producing an unpleasant
toxin. It is not harmful to health, but when afflicted beans are roasted and ground they
release an unmistakeable and pungent aroma that is eerily similar to the smell of peeling a
raw potato. This defect affects only specific beans, so finding it in your coffee does not mean
the whole bag is spoiled, unless it has all been ground.
Eradication is tricky. It is undetectable once post-harvest processing is finished, so a coffee
roaster cannot do anything to detect it before roasting. Even after roasting it is difficult to
discover until a bean with the defect is ground. It is possible to do some work during
processing to identify the cherries that have had their skins broken and are likely to be
tainted. Work is being done both on the ground and at research level to eradicate this
particular defect.
Workers spread the coffee out on drying tables, where it will dry out for five days, in preparation
for roasting or export.
TRACEABILITY
Coffees in Rwanda tend to be traceable back to washing stations and the
numerous farmer groups and cooperatives that supply them. Each producer
has on average just 183 trees, so it is not possible to find a coffee traceable to a
single producer.
LOCAL VARIETIES
MIBIRIZI
This is the name of the mission in Rwanda that received some Bourbon trees from
Guatemala. Mibirizi is a natural variant of Bourbon, which appeared at the mission. It was
initially grown in Rwanda and later spread to Burundi in the 1930s.
JACKSON
This is another Bourbon variant that was initially grown in Rwanda and has since spread to
Burundi.
TASTE PROFILE
Amazing coffees from Rwanda often have a fruitiness and freshness reminiscent of red apples
or red grapes. Berry fruit flavours and floral qualities are also fairly common.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 11,920,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 220,000
Coffee is grown across the whole of Rwanda, without specific geographic zones of constriction.
Roasters may use the name of a district along with the name of the washing station or farmer
group.
SOUTHERN AND WESTERN REGION
Some stunning coffees come from this part of the country. Production seems particularly focused
around the mountainous Huye region, the Nyamagabe region and the Nyamasheke region on the
shores of Lake Kivu.
Altitude: 1,700–2,200m (5,600–7,200ft)
Harvest: March–June
Varieties: Bourbon, Mibirizi
EASTERN REGION
The altitude in the east of the country is not as high as in other regions, but great coffees are
being produced in Ngoma and in Nyagatare in the extreme northeast.
Altitude: 1,300–1,900m (4,300–6,200ft)
Harvest: March–June
Varieties: Bourbon, Mibirizi
C
TANZANIA
Oral histories tell of coffee coming to Tanzania from Ethiopia in the 16th century. Brought by the
Haya people and known as ‘Haya Coffee’ or amwani, this was probably a Robusta variety and
has since become strongly entwined in Tanzanian culture. The ripe cherries would be boiled,
then smoked for several days and chewed rather than brewed into a drink.
offee first became a cash crop for Tanzania (previously Tanganyika)
under German colonial rule. In 1911, the colonists mandated the planting
of Arabica coffee trees throughout the Bukoba region. Their methods
were very different from the way the Haya people had traditionally dealt with
coffee growing, and the Haya were reluctant to replace their food crops with
coffee. However, the region did start to produce more and more coffee. Other
parts of the country were less familiar with coffee, and so provided less
resistance to growing it. The Chagga tribe, living around Mount Kilimanjaro,
switched completely to coffee production when Germany put an end to the
slave trade.
After World War I, control of the region fell to the British. They launched
a campaign to plant over ten million seedlings in Bukoba but they, too, fell
into conflict with the Haya, which often resulted in trees being uprooted. As a
result, there was not a strong growth in production in the region, compared to
that in the Chagga region. However, the first cooperative was formed in 1925,
called the Kilimanjaro Native Planters’ Association (KNPA). This was the
first of several cooperatives, and the producers enjoyed their new-found
ability to sell more directly to London and to achieve better prices.
After independence was granted in 1961, the Tanzanian government
turned its attention to coffee, hoping to double production by 1970 – a goal
they did not achieve. After struggling with low growth in industry, high levels
of inflation and a declining economy, the government changed to a
multiparty democracy.
Overlooked by Mount Kilimanjaro, these recently planted coffee trees form part of a new
plantation in Mwika, Tanzania.
During the early and mid-1990s, reforms were implemented in the coffee
industry to allow the more direct sale of coffee from producers to buyers,
instead of driving everything through the State Coffee Marketing Board. The
coffee industry suffered a serious setback in the late 1990s when coffee wilt
disease spread through the country and caused significant losses of coffee
trees in the north, close to the border with Uganda. Today Tanzania’s coffee
production is about seventy per cent Arabica and thirty per cent Robusta.
A worker sorts through dried, harvested beans at a factory near the Ngorongoro Crater, Tanzania.
The coffee produced in this country is almost entirely harvested from smallholder farms.
TRACEABILITY
Around ninety per cent of coffee in Tanzania is produced by its 450,000
smallholder farmers. The remaining ten per cent comes from larger estates.
It is possible to find coffees traceable back to a cooperative of growers and
their washing station, or back to a single farm if it is an estate coffee. The
better coffees I have tasted in recent years have come from the estates, and I
would recommend seeking them out first.
GRADING
Tanzania uses what is sometimes called the British nomenclature of grading, similar to that
in Kenya. These grades include AA, A, B, PB, C, E, F, AF, TT, UG and TEX.
TASTE PROFILE
Complex, with bright and lively acidity and often with berry and fruity flavours, Tanzanian
coffees can be juicy, interesting and delicious.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 55,570,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 870,000
Tanzania produces a reasonable quantity of Robusta, although this production is focused in the
northwest, near Lake Victoria. The other growing regions are, in some ways, defined by their high
altitude.
KILIMANJARO
This is the oldest growing area in Tanzania for Arabica, so it is fair to say that it has had the most
time to develop its recognition internationally and build its reputation. The long tradition of
coffee production here means there is better infrastructure and facilities, although a lot of the
trees are now very old and have comparatively low yields. Increasingly, coffee is facing
competition from other crops.
Altitude: 1,050–2,500m (3,500–8,100ft)
Harvest: July–December
Varieties: Kent, Bourbon, Typica, Typica/Nyara
ARUSHA
Arusha borders the region around Mount Kilimanjaro, and in many ways is very similar. This region
surrounds Mount Meru, an active volcano that has been quiet since 1910.
Altitude: 1,100–1,800m (3,600–5,900ft)
Harvest: July–December
Varieties: Kent, Bourbon, Typica, Typica/Nyara
RUVUMA
This region takes its name from the Ruvuma river and is in the extreme south of the country. The
coffee tends to be centred around the Mbingo district, and is considered to have great potential
for high quality, although in the past it has been held back by a lack of access to finance.
Altitude: 1,200–1,800m (3,900–5,900ft)
Harvest: June–October
Varieties: Kent, Bourbon, Bourbon derivatives such as N5 and N39
MBEYA
Centred around the city of Mbeya in the south of the country, this region is a key producer of
high-value export crops including coffee, tea, cacao and spices. The area has recently seen
increased interest from certification groups and non-government organizations looking to
improve the quality of the coffee produced, which traditionally has not always been very high.
Altitude: 1,200–2,000m (3,900–6,600ft)
Harvest: June–October
Varieties: Kent, Bourbon, Typica
TARIME
This is a small region in the far north of the country, bordering Kenya, with a limited international
profile. It is starting to produce some higher-quality coffees and has the opportunity to expand its
production. It has a relatively low production and limited infrastructure for coffee processing, but
the increased attention it has seen recently has led to coffee production being tripled in the last
ten years.
Altitude: 1,500–1,800m (4,900–5,900ft)
Harvest: July–December
Varieties: Kent, Bourbon, Typica, Robustas
KIGOMA
This region is named for the regional capital city of Kigoma, and is situated on a plateau of gently
rolling hills in the northeast of the country near the border with Burundi. The region has produced
some stunning coffees, though the industry there is still in its infancy compared to the rest of the
country.
Altitude: 1,100–1,700m (3,600–5,600ft)
Harvest: July–December
Varieties: Kent, Bourbon, Typica
A
UGANDA
Uganda is one of the few countries in the world with indigenous coffee, with Robusta growing
wild around Lake Victoria. Coffee is an enormous part of the Ugandan export economy, and the
country is one of the largest producers of coffee in the world. However, as most of that coffee is
Robusta, Uganda has struggled to achieve a reputation for quality.
lthough the indigenous Robusta crops had been part of Ugandan culture
for hundreds of years, coffee wasn’t originally part of the country’s
agricultural industry. In the early 1900s, Arabica was introduced,
probably from Malawi and Ethiopia. This crop didn’t do well and struggled
against disease. However, around the same time there was an increase in the
farming of Robusta and the more disease-resistant variety seemed to
flourish.
In 1925 coffee made up only one per cent of the country’s exports, but was
considered an important crop and well-suited to the increasing number of
smallholder farmers. In 1929 the Coffee Industry Board was established.
Cooperative farming acted as a catalyst for the industry’s growth and in the
1940s coffee became the country’s principle export. Following independence,
the government passed a Coffee Act in 1969 that gave the Coffee Industry
Board full control over pricing.
Coffee remained a strong industry through Idi Amin’s regime, buoyed for
a time by the global increase in prices caused by the frost in Brazil in 1975. In
the 1980s it was still the strongest cash crop, and production grew. However,
an increasing amount of coffee was smuggled over borders into neighbouring
countries to be sold at a higher price than that mandated by the government.
In 1988 the Coffee Industry Board increased the prices it paid to farmers,
but by the end of the year it was deeply in debt, and had to be bailed out by the
government. The collapse of the International Coffee Agreement in 1989
caused a dramatic drop in prices, and the government devalued the Ugandan
shilling in an effort to make coffee exports more appealing globally. In 1990
production dropped by twenty per cent, not only because of prices but also
because of drought and a shift away from coffee towards other subsistence
crops.
In the early 1990s the industry became increasingly liberalized, with the
government only playing a supporting role in marketing and development.
From here we can draw a fairly straight line to today’s coffee industry. The
Ugandan Coffee Development Authority has continued to relax rules,
allowing better traceability and easier access to Ugandan coffee. Producer
groups are increasingly building their own brands and reputations.
Robusta remains the primary coffee export, and Uganda is building a
reputation for good-quality Robusta. Arabica production remains relatively
small, but quality is increasing. In the coming years, Ugandan coffees will
probably play a bigger and bigger role in the speciality world.
Some regions of Uganda have the right combination of soil, altitude and climate to produce
excellent coffee.
Roasting coffee at the Good African Coffee company’s factory in Kampala. The company was set
up by a local businessman in 2003.
TRACEABILITY
The best coffees from Uganda generally come from producer groups or
cooperatives. There are two terms unique to Ugandan coffees: Wugar
(washed Ugandan Arabica) and Drugar (dried Ugandan Arabica). The
country produces coffee nearly all year round, with most areas having a main
crop and a second, smaller crop known as a ‘fly crop’.
A coffee farmer in the Kamuli region, where an NGO-run agricultural training programme helps
people improve their livelihoods.
TASTE PROFILE
Exceptional coffee from Uganda is still relatively rare, but the best cups are sweet, full of dark
fruits and have a clean finish.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 41,490,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 4,900,000
Growing regions in Uganda are not always well or clearly defined and agreed upon.
BUGISU
This area has the best reputation for quality, in particular the area around Mount Elgon close to
the border with Kenya. Farms are on steep slopes here, and the lack of infrastructure can prove
challenging. The area has the soil, altitude and climate to produce excellent coffee.
Altitude: 1,500–2,300m (4,900–7,550ft)
Harvest: October–March (main crop), May–July (fly crop)
Varieties: Kent, Typica, SL-14, SL-28
WEST NILE
More Arabica coffee grows in the northwest of the country, to the north of Lake Albert, up against
the border with the Democratic Republic of Congo. Arabicas grow closer to the lake, with more
Robusta further to the north.
Altitude: 1,450–1,800m (4,760–5,900ft)
Harvest: October–January (main crop), April–June (fly crop)
Varieties: Kent, Typica, SL-14, SL-28, native Robusta
WESTERN UGANDA
The highest coffee production is in the Rwenzori mountains, bordering the Democratic Republic
of Congo. It is common to see naturally processed coffees (the Drugars) produced in this region.
Altitude: 1,200–2,200m (3,900–7,200ft)
Harvest: April–July (main crop), October–January (fly crop)
Varieties: Kent, Typica, SL-14, SL-28, native Robusta
CENTRAL LOWLANDS
Robusta grows throughout much of the country, all the way down to the Lake Victoria Basin.
Altitudes are much lower and crops are dependent on good rainfall. Tuzza is a modern Catimor
variety grown in lower regions, and is disease resistant.
Altitude: 1,200–1,500m (3,900–4,900ft)
Harvest: November–February (main crop), May–August (fly crop)
Varieties: native Robusta, some Tuzza
C
ZAMBIA
Zambia has been, for quite some time, overlooked by much of the speciality coffee industry.
One could argue that it is a chicken-and-egg situation, as historically little interest from speciality
buyers has led to little investment in quality, and little investment in quality has led to little
interest from speciality buyers.
offee was introduced to Zambia in the 1950s, by missionaries who brought
Bourbon seed stock from Tanzania and Kenya. However, the industry did
not gear up production until the late 1970s and early 1980s with the
assistance of funding from the World Bank. Problems with pests and diseases
led growers to adopt the Catimor hybrid, which is less delicious than
Bourbon. This was, in some ways, a temporary switch and the government
went back to recommending Bourbon, but there is still a fair amount of
Catimor in the country.
Zambia’s coffee exports peaked in 2005/2006 at around 6,500 tonnes
(7,150 tons), but have dropped dramatically since. Some attribute the drop to
low prices and a crucial lack of long-term financing in the industry. In
addition to this, the country’s largest producer closed in 2008 after
defaulting on its loans. The Northern Coffee Corp was producing one-third of
the country’s 6,000 tonnes (6,600 tons) at the time of closure. Total
production dropped to just 300 tonnes (330 tons) in 2012, although it now
seems to be recovering.
Most of Zambia’s coffee comes from larger estates, although there has
been some encouragement of smallholders too. The estates are generally well
run, have good access to modern equipment (because coffee production
started relatively late here), and may be owned by multinationals.
Smallholder farming has struggled to take hold, access to fertilizers and
equipment has been difficult and generally the quality has not been high. The
lack of access to water and decent post-harvest processing has further
hindered the production of clean, sweet coffees.
TRACEABILITY
The best coffees in Zambia tend to come from single estates, although you
may have to look hard for them. Not only is overall production small in
Zambia, but high-quality coffees are not commonplace. Frustratingly, the
country has the undeniable potential to produce stellar coffees, from its seed
stock to its geography.
Once ripened, coffee cherries are picked by workers on Zambia’s plantations, most of which are
large, well-run estates that have good access to modern equipment.
TASTE PROFILE
The rare, excellent coffees are bright and floral, with a clean fruit-like complexity.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 16,590,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 2,000
The regions in Zambia are not well defined, and are typically just referred to as Southern, Central,
Copperbelt and Northern regions. Coffee is mainly grown in the Northern district of the
Muchinga Mountains (an area that includes the regions of Isoka, Nakonde and Kasama) and
around the capital city Lusaka.
Altitude: 900–2,000m (3,000–6,600ft)
Harvest: April–September
Varieties: Bourbon, Catimor
C
CHINA
In many ways, the eyes of the coffee world are on China. As a consuming country, it has the
potential to destabilize the global industry but China is also starting to produce surprisingly
large volumes of coffee. Growers are beginning to turn their attention to quality, pushing the
boundaries of what is possible with the soil, climate and varieties found there.
offee was introduced to the Yunnan province by a French missionary in
1892. The story is that he crossed the border from Vietnam, bringing with
him coffee seeds, and then planted them near his church in the village of
Zhukula. For almost a hundred years, very little happened in the way of
coffee production – unsurprising in a region famous for the amount, and
quality, of tea it grows. In 1988, coffee production was invigorated in Yunnan,
as part of a joint venture with the United Nations Development Program and
the World Bank. Its success probably lies with the interest and support of
Nestlé, which encouraged growth in the region.
Coffee production stayed relatively small until around 2009, when a
significant jump occurred. This was probably due to a combination of lower
tea prices and a brief spike in the global price of coffee. The coffee industry
continues to grow in Yunnan, buoyed in particular by a growing market
throughout China. Per capita consumption of coffee in China is still
incredibly low, but its enormous population means the Chinese market has
the potential to have an enormous impact on the supply and demand of coffee
production worldwide.
Right now China is beginning to get a taste for its own coffee; the best
Chinese coffee I have tasted was only available in China. Quality-based
auctions are increasingly popular and prices being paid for locally grown
coffee are very high. This makes China an unusual market, and certainly one
to watch.
China is now exporting some excellent coffee, which is well worth seeking
out. Many of the lots are still varieties chosen for disease resistance rather
than taste, and there are still challenges to be overcome with the cultivation
of more delicate varieties. However, I expect to see better and better every
year.
Chinese farmers belonging to the Miao ethnic minority group harvest coffee beans at a plantation
in Xinzhai village, Yunnan province, southwest China.
TRACEABILITY
The best lots from China can come from a single farm or from a group of
producers. These are absolutely worth seeking out, despite the fact that
China does not yet have the pedigree and expectation of quality that other
producing countries have.
TASTE PROFILE
The better coffees coming from China have a pleasant sweetness and fruitiness, though many
still carry a little woodiness or earthiness too. Relatively low in acidity and often relatively fullbodied.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 1,370,000,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 2,200,000
While the growing regions in China cover a relatively small area of the country, they still cover vast
amounts of land. Coffee has plenty of room to grow in China, both in terms of production and
consumption.
YUNNAN
The area where coffee was first grown in China remains the primary producing region for highquality
coffee in the country. The region is well known for Pu’er tea, and coffee production is now
a key part of that same area.
Altitude: 900−1,700m (3,000–5,580ft)
Harvest: October–January
Varieties: Catimor, with some Caturra and Bourbon
FUJIAN
This area is best known as a tea producer, home to Oolong and other teas. Coffee is a smaller
industry in the region, and very little high-quality coffee is produced there.
Harvest: November–April
Varieties: Robusta
HAINAN
Coffee was brought to the island in 1908, probably from Malaysia. Robusta is grown here in the
southernmost province of China, though there is no real reputation for quality in the region.
Harvest: November–April
Varieties: Robusta
A modern coffee shop housed in a traditional building in Souzhou, in the southeast of Jiangsu
Province.
B
INDIA
The origins of coffee production in southern India are entwined with myth. The story goes that a
pilgrim named Baba Budan passed through Yemen in 1670 while returning from Mecca and
smuggled out seven coffee seeds, the export of which was strictly controlled. Because he took
seven, a sacrosanct number in Islam, it was considered a religious act.
aba Budan planted these first seeds in what is now known as the
Chikmagalur district of the Karnataka region and there they thrived. The
hills there now bear his name, Bababudangiri, and this is still an
important coffee-growing area.
It wasn’t until the middle of the 19th century, under British colonial rule,
that coffee plantations in southern India began to flourish. This was shortlived,
however, and coffee’s popularity began to wane again. In the 1870s the
industry suffered due to an increasing demand for tea, combined with an
increasing incidence of leaf rust, which attacked the coffee plants. Many
plantations switched to tea production, ironically the same plantations that
had been successful exporting their coffee. Leaf rust did not drive coffee out
of India, however, but instead encouraged research into rust-resistant
varieties. This research was relatively successful and some new varieties
were bred, although this was before the flavour of the coffee was deemed to
be very important.
In 1942, the Coffee Board of India was created, by way of a government act
that began the regulation of the industry. Some argue that by pooling coffees
from many producers, the government reduced incentives for producers to
improve the quality of their coffee. However, production certainly grew and
in the 1990s India’s output increased by an astonishing thirty per cent.
During the 1990s there was also a decrease in regulation governing how
and where producers could sell their coffee. The domestic coffee market in
India also grew rapidly. While India has a very low per capita consumption of
coffee, tea being a far cheaper alternative, the population is so large that the
total consumption is quite sizeable. The annual consumption per person is
just 100g (3½oz), but this results in a total consumption of two million bags
of coffee per year. India produces just over five million bags in total, although
the majority of this is Robusta.
Robusta is, in many ways, better suited to India than Arabica. The lower
altitudes and climate make Robusta yields high. More care and attention is
paid to the production of Robusta in India than in most other countries so it
occupies the premium end of the market. Even the best Robustas still carry
the distinctive woody flavours of the species, but the relative lack of unclean
flavours in Indian Robustas makes them popular with roasters who still like
Robusta in their espresso blends.
Although tea is generally more popular in India, the country consumes two million of the five
million bags of coffee it produces annually, most of which is the Robusta variety.
MONSOONING
One of the better-known coffees from India is called Monsoon Malabar, and
it is created by an unusual process called ‘monsooning’. Monsooning is now a
controlled process, but it began completely by accident. During its export
from India to Europe at the time of the British Raj, coffee was transported in
wooden boxes and was, therefore, subjected to the wet weather that came
during the monsoon months. The raw coffee absorbed a great deal of
moisture, which had a strong effect on the resulting cup of coffee.
As export practices improved, the demand for this unusual coffee still
remained so the process was recreated in factories along the west coast.
Monsooning is only done with naturally processed coffees; the raw coffee
looks very pale afterwards and is somewhat brittle. Monsooned beans are
difficult to roast evenly, and their brittle nature means that a bag of roasted
coffee often contains lots of beans that have been damaged in the packing
process. This is nothing to worry about, however, and is not the same thing as
low-grade coffees that contain broken pieces in them and should be avoided.
During the monsooning process, coffee usually loses its acidity, but often
gains pungent, wild flavours that make it somewhat divisive in the coffee
industry. Some love the richness and intensity of the cup, while others
believe the flavours are the result of defective processing and are very
unpleasant.
TRACEABILITY
Because 98 per cent of India’s 250,000 coffee producers are small growers, it
is often difficult to find coffees traceable down to a single estate. However,
these are often worth seeking out. Traceability may only be possible back to
the point of processing or to a specific region.
Coffee berries dry in the sun at Coorg, part of the Tamil Nadu, one of India’s four main coffee
growing states.
GRADING
Indian coffees are graded in two different ways. The first is unique to India, and classifies all
washed coffees as ‘Plantation Coffees’, all naturally processed coffees as ‘Cherry’, and all
washed Robusta coffees as ‘Parchment Coffees’.
India also uses a size-based grading system, from AAA (the largest), down through AA, A
and also PB (peaberry). As in many other countries that use a size system, the larger bean
sizes are associated with higher quality but this is not necessarily true.
TASTE PROFILE
The best coffees from India tend to be heavy, creamy and low in acidity, but rarely particularly
complex.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 1,326,572,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 5,333,000
Most of India’s coffee is grown in four main states, each of which can be subdivided into a
number of smaller geographic regions.
TAMIL NADU
Tamil Nadu (which translates simply as ‘land of the Tamils’) is the southernmost of India’s 28
states. The capital city is Chennai (formerly Madras), and the region is famous for its monumental
Hindu temples.
PULNEY
This is the largest area of coffee production in the state. There are a number of challenges here
for the coffee growers, including a high incidence of leaf rust (which determines the choice of
varieties to grow), labour shortages, absentee ownership, and a scarcity of water for post-harvest
processing.
Altitude: 600−2,000m (2,000–6,600ft)
Harvest: October–February
Varieties: S795, Selection 5B, Selection 9, Selection 10, Cauvery
NILGIRI
Many growers in this mountainous region are tribal and have smallholdings with financial
constraints. This region produces around twice as much Robusta as Arabica, and struggles with
high rainfall and many different kinds of pests, including coffee berry borer. It is the westernmost
of the growing regions, bordering Karnataka and Kerala.
Altitude: 900−1,400m (3,000–4,600ft)
Harvest: October–February
Varieties: S795, Kent, Cauvery, Robustas
SHEVAROY
This region produces almost exclusively Arabica. Most of the farmers in the region are
smallholders, but the distribution of land is skewed in favour of larger farms. Only 5 per cent of
the farms occupy around 75 per cent of the land under coffee. One of the problems with large
farms in the area is the trend towards monocultures of trees used to shade the coffee, silver oak
being extremely common here. Many consider that a diverse range of shade trees is important for
biodiversity and sustainable production.
Altitude: 900−1,500m (3,000–4,900ft)
Harvest: October–February
Varieties: S795, Cauvery, Selection 9
KARNATAKA
This state produces the majority of the nation’s coffee. It used to be known as Mysore, but was
renamed Karnataka in 1973. The meaning of the name is not completely agreed, opinion divided
between ‘elevated lands’ and ‘the black region’, the latter being a reference to the black cotton
soil (vertisol) found in the area.
BABABUDANGIRI
This region is considered the home of Indian coffee, where Baba Budan first planted the seeds he
smuggled from Yemen.
Altitude: 1000−1,500m (3,300–4,900ft)
Harvest: October–February
Varieties: S795, Selection 9, Cauvery
CHIKMAGALUR
This is a larger region that encompasses Bababudangiri within it. It is centred around, and named
for, the city of Chikmagalur. The region produces slightly more Robusta than it does Arabica.
Altitude: 700−1,200m (2,300–3,900ft)
Harvest: October–February
Varieties: S795, Selection 5B, Selection 9, Cauvery, Robustas
COORG
Many plantations in this region were started by the British in the 19th century, then sold to the
locals when India gained independence in 1947. Nearly twice as much land here is used to grow
Robusta as Arabica so, with its higher yield, nearly three times as much Robusta as Arabica is
produced in the region.
Altitude: 750−1,100m (2,450–3,600ft)
Harvest: October–February
Varieties: S795, Selection 6, Selection 9, Robustas
MANJARABAD
This area is more focused on Arabica, although several of its estates have been recognized for the
quality of their Robustas through competitions run by the Coffee Board of India.
Altitude: 900−1,100m (3,000–3,600ft)
Harvest: October–February
Varieties: S795, Selection 6, Selection 9, Cauvery
KERALA
This southwestern state produces just under one-third of the total Indian coffee production. It is
home to the Malabar coast, and therefore the Monsooned Malabar coffees, and organic coffee
production has had greater success in this region than any other. The export of spices began here
in the 1500s, which brought the first Portuguese to the region and established a trade route that
would pave the way for the European colonization of India.
TRAVANCORE
This region grows mostly Robusta, although some Arabicas are produced at higher altitudes.
Altitude: 400−1,600m (1,300–5,200ft)
Harvest: October−February
Varieties: S274, Robustas
WAYANAD
The low altitude in this part of India really only lends itself to Robusta production.
Altitude: 600−900m (2,000–3,000ft)
Harvest: October−February
Varieties: Robustas, S274
ANDHRA PRADESH
The Eastern Ghats mountain range runs along the east coast of India, providing the necessary
altitude for coffee. Only a relatively small amount of coffee is produced in this region, though the
majority is Arabica.
Altitude: 900−1,100m (3,000–3,600ft)
Harvest: October−February
Varieties: S795, Selection 4, Selection 5, Cauvery
E
INDONESIA
The first attempt to grow coffee on the Indonesian archipelago was a failure. In 1696 the
Governor of Jakarta (then Batavia) was sent a present of a few coffee seedlings by the Dutch
Governor of Malabar in India. These plants were lost in a flood in Jakarta, so a second shipment
was sent in 1699. These plants flourished.
xports of coffee began in 1711, and were controlled by the Dutch East India
Company, usually referred to by its Dutch initials VOC (Vereenigde
Oostindische Compagniey). Coffee arriving in Amsterdam sold for high
prices, 1kg (2lb) costing nearly one per cent of the average annual income.
The price slowly came down during the 18th century, but coffee was
undeniably very profitable for the VOC. However, as Java was under colonial
rule at the time, it was not at all profitable for the farmers who grew it. In
1860 a Dutch colonial official wrote a novel entitled Max Havelaar: Or the
Coffee Auctions of the Dutch Trading Company, which described the abuses of
the colonial system. This book had a lasting impact on Dutch society,
changing public opinion about the way coffee was traded and the colonial
system in general. The name Max Havelaar is now used for an ethical
certification within the coffee industry.
Initially Indonesia produced only Arabica, but coffee leaf rust wiped out
much of the crop in 1876. There was some attempt to plant the Liberica
species instead, but that also suffered at the hands of leaf rust, so production
switched to the disease-resistant Robusta. Today Robusta still makes up a
significant portion of the crop.
GILING BASAH
One of the unique aspects of coffee production in Indonesia, and the source
of Indonesian coffee’s deeply divisive taste, is the traditional post-harvest
process of giling basah. This hybrid process combines elements of the
washed and natural processes. This semi-washed process has a dramatic
effect on the cup quality. It significantly reduces the acidity of the coffee, and
seems to increase its body too, creating a softer, rounder, heavier-bodied cup
of coffee. However, it also introduces a gamut of additional flavours,
sometimes vegetal or herbal, sometimes woody or musty, sometimes earthy.
This is not to say that all coffee processed this way is uniform in quality and
has gone through some sort of flavour standardization. There are huge
variations in the quality of these coffees.
The flavour of semi-washed coffees is particularly divisive within the
coffee industry. If a coffee from Africa or Central America displayed the same
flavours, regardless of how well the process was done, it would be considered
defective and rejected immediately by any potential buyers. However, there
are many people who find the intensity and heavy-bodied cups of coffee
brewed from Indonesian semi-washed lots delicious, and so the industry
continues to buy them.
In recent years, speciality buyers have encouraged producers throughout
Indonesia to experiment more with the washed process to allow some
appreciation of the taste of the variety and the land rather than the dominant
flavours of the process. We shall see if demand for these coffees is strong
enough to encourage widespread production of cleaner coffees, or if the
industry will see continued demand for semi-washed lots and simply
continue to meet it.
An Indonesian woman scales a large coffee tree to harvest the crop. Coffee has been exported
from here since the 16th century, when the Dutch East India Company established a lucrative
trade.
Large baskets of Robusta berries are raked out to dry in the sun in Tanggamus, Lampung
Province, one of the largest coffee-producing regions in Indonesia.
KOPI LUWAK
In Indonesia, Kopi Luwak refers to coffees that are produced by collecting the droppings of
civet cats that have eaten coffee cherries. This semi-digested coffee is separated from the
faecal matter and then processed and dried. In the last decade it has come to be seen as an
amusing novelty, with unattributed claims of its excellent flavours, and it sells for
spectacularly high prices. This has caused two main problems.
Firstly, the forgery of this coffee is quite commonplace. Several times more is sold than
produced, and often low-grade Robusta is being passed off at high prices.
Secondly, it has encouraged unscrupulous operators on the islands to trap and cage civet
cats, force-feed them with coffee cherries and keep them in terrible conditions.
I find Kopi Luwak abhorrent on just about every level. If you are interested in delicious coffee
then it is a terrible waste of money. One-quarter of the money you might spend on a bag
could instead buy you a stunning coffee from one of the very best producers in the world. I
can only regard the practice as abusive and unethical and I believe people should avoid all
animal-processed coffees, and not reward this despicable behaviour with their money.
TRACEABILITY
While it is possible to find coffees from individual farms on the islands, these
are relatively rare. However, those that have been kept traceable, and have
been fully washed (rather than semi-washed) are definitely worth trying.
Most coffee is produced by smallholders with just 1–2 hectares (2.2–4.4
acres) of land so usually a coffee is only traceable down to a specific washing
station, or only a region. There is very wide variation in the quality of these
regional coffees, and they can be something of a gamble.
TASTE PROFILE
Semi-washed coffees tend to be very heavy bodied, earthy, woody and spicy with very little
acidity.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 263,510,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 11,491,000
From its origins in Java, coffee slowly spread around the other islands in the region, first to
Sulawesi in 1750. It didn’t reach Northern Sumatra until 1888, first being grown around Toba lake,
and eventually appeared in the Tawar lake region in Gayo in 1924.
SUMATRA
The island of Sumatra has three main growing regions: the province of Aceh in the north, the Lake
Toba region a little to the south and, more recently, coffee has been produced in the south of the
island around Mangkuraja. It may be possible to trace coffees to smaller areas within these
regions: Takengon or Bener Mariah in the Aceh region; and Lintong, Sidikalang, Dolok Sanggul or
Seribu Dolok around Lake Toba. Traceability down to this level is relatively recent.
In the past it was common to see coffee sold under the name of ‘Sumatra Mandheling’. There is
no place called Mandheling, the name refers to an ethnic group from the island. Often
Mandheling coffees were given a grade, either 1 or 2. The grading is apparently based on the cup
quality rather than the green coffee, which is more usual, but I would be hesitant to recommend
all grade 1’s because the awarding can occasionally seem somewhat random.
It is unusual to separate different varieties into different lots, so most Sumatran coffee will
probably be a mixture of unknown varieties. Coffees from Sumatra are shipped out of the port of
Medan, but the hot, humid climate can have a negative effect on the coffee if it is left on the
dockside too long before being shipped.
Altitude: Aceh 1,100−1,300m (3,600–4,300ft), Lake Toba 1,100−1,600m (3,600–
5,200ft), Mangkuraja 1,100−1,300m (3,600–4,300ft)
Harvest: September–December
Varieties: Typica (including Bergandal, Sidikalang and Djember), TimTim, Ateng,
Onan Ganjang
VARIETY NAMES
Variety names in Sumatra can be a little tricky. Most of the Arabica seed stock initially
brought to the island would have been derived from the strain of Typica that was taken from
Yemen. In Sumatra this is often called Djember Typica, but it should be noted that Djember
also refers to a completely different variety (a less superior one) found in Sulawesi.
It is common to see varieties that have, at some point, been cross-bred with Robusta. The
best-known hybrid is called the Hybrido de Timor, a parent of the more common Catimor
variety. In Sumatra it is often called TimTim.
JAVA
It is more common to find large coffee estates here than anywhere else in Indonesia, due to the
colonial history and practices of the Dutch. The four largest farms, previously government estates,
cover over 4,000 hectares (8,800 acres) between them. For a long time the island enjoyed a stellar
reputation for its coffee, although I am sure it was not long before other coffees came to
substitute the real thing in the ‘Mocha-Java’ blend of a great many roasters. Javan coffees
commanded huge premiums for a long time, although prices fell towards the end of the 20th
century.
Much of the coffee is planted on the east side of Java, around the Ijen volcano, but there are
producers on the west side of the island, too.
Altitude: 900−1,800m (3,000–5,900ft)
Harvest: July−September
Varieties: Typicas, Ateng, USDA
OLD BROWN JAVA
Some estates in Java choose to age their coffee before export, for anything up to five years.
The raw coffee beans turn from the blue-green commonly associated with semi-washed
coffee, through to a muddy shade of brown. Once roasted there is no acidity left in the
coffee whatsoever, and there is an intense pungency and woodiness that some enjoy.
However, if you like your coffee sweet, clean and lively, you may well hate it.
SULAWESI
Most of the coffee from Sulawesi is produced by smallholders, although there are seven large
estates which make up about five per cent of the total production. Most of the Arabica on the
island is grown high up around Tana Toraja. To the south is the city of Kalosi, which became a
kind of brand name for coffees from the region. There are two other less well-known coffeegrowing
regions: Mamasa to the west, and Gowa south of Kalosi. Some of the most interesting
coffees from the island are fully washed, and can be exceptionally enjoyable. I would recommend
seeking them out if you get the opportunity. The semi-washed process is still common though,
and the island also produces a good amount of Robusta. Coffee production can be somewhat
disorganized throughout the region, as many smallholders grow coffee for supplemental income,
concentrating their efforts on other crops.
Altitude: Tana Toraja 1,100−1,800m (3,600–5,900ft), Mamasa 1300–1700m (4,300–
5,600ft), Gowa average of 850m (2,800ft)
Harvest: May−November
Varieties: S795, Typicas, Ateng
FLORES
Flores is a small island about 320km (200 miles) to the east of Bali, and among the Indonesian
islands it was a latecomer to both growing coffee and developing a strong reputation for it. In the
past it was not uncommon for a large portion of the coffee from Flores to be sold internally or
blended into other coffees rather than being exported as ‘Flores coffee’. The island has a mixture
of active and dormant volcanoes, which have had a positive effect on the soils. One of the key
growing regions is Bajawa. In terms of coffee processing, the semi-washed process is still
extremely common in the area, although there is some fully-washed coffee being produced.
Altitude: 1,200−1,800m (3,900–5,900ft)
Harvest: May−September
Varieties: Ateng, Typicas, Robusta
BALI
Coffee came to Bali fairly late, and it was initially grown on the highland plateau of Kintamani.
Coffee production in Bali suffered a significant setback in 1963 when the Gunung Agung volcano
erupted, killing two thousand people and causing widespread devastation to the east of the
island. By the late 1970s and early 1980s the government was doing more to promote coffee
production, in part by handing out Arabica seedlings. One could argue that this had limited
success, however, as today around eighty per cent of the island’s production is Robusta.
While tourism provides the largest income for the island, agriculture is its biggest employer. In
the past, Japan bought a substantial portion, if not all, of the coffee crop.
Altitude: 1,250−1,700m (4,100–5,600ft)
Harvest: May−October
Varieties: Typica and Typica derivatives, Robusta
Raw coffee beans are dried at a plantation in Bali. Coffee production creates significant
employment in the region and much of the coffee harvest is sold to Japan.
Plantations in Papua New Guinea’s Eastern and Western Highlands are the most notable areas for
coffee, most of which are owned by smallholders.
T
PAPUA NEW GUINEA
Many people would associate Papua New Guinea’s coffees with those from Indonesia, but it
would be unfair to do so. Papua New Guinea rightly stands apart and the eastern half of New
Guinea shares relatively little with neighbouring Papua when it comes to coffee.
he history of coffee production on the island is not long. While coffee was
planted relatively early, in the 1890s, it was not treated as a commercial
product at first. In 1926, however, 18 estates were established using seeds
from Jamaica’s Blue Mountain, and by 1928 coffee production had begun in
earnest.
The industry began a more structured growth in the 1950s, with the
creation of infrastructure to help facilitate the movement of coffee around
the island. Further growth followed in the 1970s, perhaps spurred on by
Brazil’s drop back in production. The government sponsored a series of
programmes to encourage small farms to be run by cooperatives. At that time
the industry was more focused around managed estates, but since the 1980s
the industry has begun to change and decentralize. This is probably due to
the drop in coffee prices, which has left many estates in financial trouble.
Smallholders aren’t at such risk from market forces and so have been able to
continue to produce coffee.
Today 95 per cent of producers are smallholders, often subsistence
farmers. They produce around 90 per cent of the country’s coffee, which is
almost entirely Arabica. This means a very large proportion of the population
is involved in the production of coffee, especially in the highland regions.
This has certainly presented challenges when it comes to producing large
quantities of high-quality coffee, as many producers lack access to proper
post-harvest facilities, and a lack of traceability in the product prevents clear
rewards for higher-quality coffee.
Although coffee production in Papua New Guinea only took hold in the 20th century, it is now an
established crop. Arabica forms the majority of exports and is mostly grown in highland regions.
TRACEABILITY
Several large estates still operate very successfully, so it is possible to find
coffees from a single estate. There is not a long history of traceability, and in
the past some farms were acquiring coffee from other producers to pass off as
their own. The idea of coffee being sold by region is also relatively new.
However, the altitude and soils in the country offer great potential for
quality, so there has been renewed interest from the speciality market in the
last few years. Look out for coffees traceable to a specific estate or a group of
producers.
GRADING
Exports are graded by quality, in descending order: AA, A, X, PSC and Y. The first three are
awarded to estate coffees, while the last two are grades for smallholder coffees, PSC
standing for Premium Smallholder Coffee.
TASTE PROFILE
Great coffees from Papua New Guinea often have a buttery quality, great sweetness and
wonderful complexity.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 7,060,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 1,171,000
Most of Papua New Guinea’s coffee is produced in the Highlands regions, and the area shows
great potential for producing some amazing coffees in the future. While some coffee is grown
outside of these key regions, it is only a very small amount.
EASTERN HIGHLANDS
There is a single mountain chain that runs through the country, and the Eastern Highlands form
part of it.
Altitude: 400−1,900m (1,300–6,200ft)
Harvest: April–September
Varieties: Bourbon, Typica, Arusha
WESTERN HIGHLANDS
This is the other key area of coffee production. Most of the coffee in this region grows around the
regional capital of Mount Hagen, named for an old, inactive volcano. Coffee produced in this area
is often milled in Goroka, so traceability of some coffees can be difficult. The combination of
altitude and incredibly fertile soil makes the potential for quality in this region incredibly exciting.
Altitude: 1,000–1,800m (3,300–5,900ft)
Harvest: April–September
Varieties: Bourbon, Typica, Arusha
SIMBU PROVINCE
Simbu (officially spelled as Chimbu) is the third-largest producing region, but its output is
substantially lower than either of the Highlands provinces. The name is derived from the local
dialect and the word Sipuuuu, meaning ‘thank you’. Most of the coffee here comes from the
coffee gardens around the homes of smallholders. Nearly ninety per cent of the population is
engaged in coffee production to some degree, and for many this is the only cash crop they grow.
Altitude: 1,300–1,900m (4,300–6,200ft)
Harvest: April–September
Varieties: Bourbon, Typica, Arusha
I
THE PHILIPPINES
The history of coffee in the Philippines is another tale of the product going from being a
bedrock of the economy to almost disappearing completely. The most common version of the
story starts in 1740, when coffee was first planted by a Spanish monk in Lipa, in Batangas
province. It flourished under Spanish colonial rule and spread around the Philippines.
n 1828, as part of an effort to foster cultivation, the Spanish offered a prize
to anyone who would plant and ripen sixty thousand square feet of coffee
(equivalent to 6,000 coffee trees). One farmer transformed his property in
Jala Jala, in the province of Rizal, into a fertile plantation and won the prize
of a thousand pesos. His success encouraged others to follow suit and
increased the cultivation of coffee.
By the 1860s the Philippines were doing a healthy trade in coffee exports,
with a large market being the United States through the gateway of San
Francisco. The completion of the Suez Canal in 1869 opened up Europe as a
potential market too. By the 1880s the Philippines was the fourth largest
producer in the world, but in 1889 it would finally succumb to the leaf rust
that had plagued so many other countries.
A combination of leaf rust and insects took a particularly heavy toll in the
Batangas region – still the dominant producing region – and two years later
production was less than twenty per cent of what it had been. Some seedlings
were transplanted north to Cavite, where they appeared to flourish.
However, most farmers moved away from coffee to other crops and for at
least fifty years the industry was relatively dormant.
In the 1950s the government attempted to resurrect the coffee industry.
With assistance from the US, it brought in disease-resistant varieties and
Robusta as part of a five-year strategic plan. It was reasonably successful and
production increased, but it wouldn’t be until 1962 or 1963 that the level was
considered self-sufficient and coffee was no longer imported for local
consumption. Part of the local demand came from the production of instant
coffee in factories around the Philippines.
Coffee production has, in many ways, mirrored world prices and there has
been an ebb and flow in production according to whether there has been
sufficient demand. The frost in Brazil in 1975 briefly gave the Philippines the
chance to be an exporting country again.
Production is currently up once more, in comparison with recent years.
Programs remain in place to encourage production, though domestic
consumption remains strong enough to mean that very little coffee is
exported from the Philippines. As so little coffee is exported, and so much of
what is produced is Robusta, it is unlikely that any excellent coffees will be
available in the immediate future.
However, the country does grow two other species of coffee, not
commonly found elsewhere: Coffea liberica and Coffea excelsa. While neither
is anything to get excited about from a taste perspective, they are undeniably
interesting to try, should the opportunity present itself.
A coffee shop in a village in the Philippines. Until the early 1960s, the Philippines did not grow
enough coffee to meet domestic demand and the country currently exports very little coffee.
TRACEABILITY
Coffee comes from a mixture of cooperatives, estates and smallholder
producers. The better coffees from the Philippines are usually more
traceable, though very rare.
TASTE PROFILE
Great coffee from the Philippines is a rarity, but better lots are quite full-bodied, with low
acidity and with light florals or fruity qualities.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 100,982,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 200,000
The Philippines is made up of 7,641 islands. As such, growing regions are often collections of
islands or groups of territories, rather than distinct topographical areas such as mountain ranges.
CORDILLERA ADMINISTRATIVE REGION
A mountainous region in northern Luzon which includes the Mountain Province, Benguet, Kalinga,
Ifugao and Abra, the Cordillera Administrative Region (CAR) is the only landlocked region in the
country. This is the highest growing area in the Philippines, though Robusta is grown at lower
altitudes around northern Luzon.
Altitude: 1,000–1,800m (3,280–5,900ft)
Harvest: October–March
Varieties: Red Bourbon, Yellow Bourbon, Typica, Mondo Novo, Caturra
CALABARZON
This administrative region is mostly lowlands, growing coffee species other than Arabica, around
Manilla and to the south and east.
Altitude: 300–500m (980–1,640ft)
Harvest: October–March
Varieties: Robusta, Excelsa, Liberica
MIMAROPA
This region is a collection of islands in the southwest which make up the four provinces of
Mindoro, Marinduque, Romblon and Palawan. While the mountainous areas reach high altitudes,
coffee is mostly grown lower down.
Altitude: 300–500m (980–1,640ft)
Harvest: October–March
Varieties: Robusta, Excelsa
VISAYAS
Another group of islands, including Bohol which is famous for its unusual small rolling mountains
called the Chocolate Hills. The Negros islands’ volcanic soil is well suited to coffee cultivation, but
lacks the altitude for better-tasting coffee.
Altitude: 500–1000m (1,640–3,280ft)
Harvest: October–March
Varieties: Catimor, Robusta
MINDANAO
The southernmost coffee-growing region in the Philippines is its most productive. Nearly 70 per
cent of coffee trees in the Philippines are planted in this region.
Altitude: 700–1,200m (2,300–3,940ft)
Harvest: October–March
Varieties: Mysore, Typica, SV-2006, Catimor, Robusta, Excelsa
A farmer dries coffee cherries in the town of Amadeo in the Calabarzon region. The Philippines is
taking tentative steps toward regaining its status as a global trader of coffee beans.
B
THAILAND
One of the most credible stories of coffee’s introduction to Thailand dates to 1904. A Muslim
pilgrim, returning home from Mecca, passed through Indonesia on his way back to Thailand and
brought with him a Robusta plant, which he planted in the south of the country. Another story
describes an Italian immigrant bringing Arabica to the north of the country in the 1950s.
Whether either or both of these stories are true, it wouldn’t be until the 1970s that any
economic importance was placed on coffee as a crop.
etween 1972 and 1979, the Thai government ran a pilot project to try to
encourage farmers in the northern region to grow coffee instead of
poppies destined for opium production. Coffee was considered
sufficiently high value to be worth switching from opium production and the
slash-and-burn style of agriculture that accompanied it. While this project
did mark the beginning of a coffee industry in Thailand, coffee did not
become a major crop until later.
Production peaked in the very early 1990s, but global price fluctuations
have deterred producers so there have been substantial swings in production
over the last two decades. As it is mostly Arabica grown in the north of the
country and Robusta in the south, a large part of the fluctuation comes from
the northern highlands where the price would have a bigger impact. Accurate
tracking of production in Thailand is difficult, as coffee is often smuggled
across the borders from Laos and Myanmar.
Today Thailand is steadily building a reputation as an underdog among
producers of great coffees. While most coffee produced in the country isn’t
particularly high quality, there are some farms and cooperatives working
hard to produce an excellent product. The increasing domestic consumption
of quality coffee is also helping growth in the industry.
TRACEABILITY
Coffees very, very rarely come from single estates. More common are
producer groups or cooperatives among the more quality-focused producers.
Coffee beans spread out to dry in the sun in northern Thailand, where mostly Arabica is grown.
The south of the country only produces Robusta.
TASTE PROFILE
Better coffee from Thailand is sweet, quite clean, but relatively low in acidity. Some spice and
chocolate often accompany a relatively full mouthfeel.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 68,864,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 664,000
NORTHERN REGION
The northern mountainous area of Thailand is made up of coffee-growing provinces such as
Chiang Mai, Chiang Rai, Lampang, Mae Hong Son and Tak. All the speciality coffee from Thailand
comes from this area, via the Doi Chaang collective.
Harvest: November–March
Altitude: 1,000–1,600m (3,280–5,250ft)
Varieties: Caturra, Catimor, Catuai
SOUTHERN REGION
The south of the country grows Robusta only, and coffee is produced in the provinces of Surat
Thani, Chumphon, Nakhon Si Thammarat, Phang Nga, Krabi and Ranong.
Harvest: December–January
Altitude: 800–1,200m (2,620–3,940ft)
Varieties: Robusta
Community workers select coffee beans at Doi Chaang Coffee in the highlands of Chiang Rai
Province.
A woman picks ripe red cofee cherries at a plantation in Chiang Rai in November, when the
harvest season begins in northern Thailand. The last coffee crops are harvested in March.
C
VIETNAM
Vietnam could be considered an unusual inclusion in a book that focuses on high-quality
speciality coffee, as it produces predominantly Robusta. However, Vietnam is different because
of the impact it has had on every coffee-producing country in the world, and therefore merits
inclusion to give some understanding.
offee was brought to Vietnam by the French in 1857, and was initially
cultivated under the plantation model. However, this did not gain any
momentum as a commercial venture until around 1910. Cultivation in the
Buôn Ma Thuột region, in the Central Highland, was interrupted by the
Vietnam war. After the war the coffee industry became increasingly
collectivized, reducing yields and production. At this point around 20,000
hectares of land produced around 5,000–7,000 tonnes (5,500–7,700 tons) of
coffee. Over the next 25 years, the amount of land under coffee would
increase by a factor of 25 and the country’s overall production by a factor of
100. Much of the industry’s growth was down to the Doi Moi reforms of 1986,
which permitted privately owned enterprises in industries that produced
commoditized crops. In the 1990s, a huge number of new companies were
formed in Vietnam, many focusing on the large-scale production of coffee. At
this time, specifically in between 1994 and 1998, prices for coffee were
relatively high, which provided strong incentives to increase coffee
production. Between 1996 and 2000, Vietnam’s coffee production doubled
and this would come to have a devastating effect on the global price of coffee.
Vietnam’s massive increase in production, which made it the secondlargest
producer of coffee in the world, resulted in a state of global oversupply
and this caused a massive price crash. Despite the fact that Vietnam was
producing Robusta rather than Arabica, it still affected the price of Arabica
because many of the largest purchasers needed a commodity product rather
than a quality one. Thus the oversupply of low-quality coffee worked in their
favour.
From the high point of 900,000 tonnes (990,000 tons) of coffee in 2000,
production declined sharply. However, as coffee prices recovered, so did
Vietnam’s production. The 2012/2013 crop was around 1.3 million tonnes
(1.4 million tons) and it continues to have a large effect on the global
industry. In recent years there has been a shift towards more Arabica,
although the lack of altitude presents a challenge to achieving a high-quality
product.
TRACEABILITY
There are several large estates in Vietnam, often controlled by multinational
companies, so it is possible to see good levels of traceability. However,
finding high-quality lots will prove extremely challenging.
Vietnam is the second-largest producer of coffee in the world, and most coffee is harvested by
hand. At a plantation in Buôn Ma Thuôt workers remove twigs and leaves from the fresh cherries.
TASTE PROFILE
Very little high-quality coffee is available in Vietnam, and so most tastes flat, woody, and lacks
sweetness or much character.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 92,700,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 26,700,000
Because there has been little demand for traceable coffee, there aren’t strongly defined growing
regions whose names are used by roasters.
CENTRAL HIGHLANDS
This region, a series of highland plateaus, contains the provinces of Dak Lak, Lam Dong, Gia Lai
and Kon Tum and is primarily a producer of Robusta. The coffee industry is centred around Buôn
Ma Thuôt, the capital of the province. Dak Lak and Lam Dong are the primary producers, growing
about seventy per cent of the country’s Robusta crop between them. Arabica has been grown in
the Central Highlands for about one hundred years, in the area around the city of Dalat in the Lam
Dong region, but this makes up a very small part of the national production.
Altitude: 600–1,000m (2,000–3,300ft)
Harvest: November–March
Varieties: Robusta varieties, some Arabica (probably Bourbon)
SOUTH VIETNAM
There is some production northeast of Ho Chi Minh City, in the province of Dong Nai. This is
primarily Robusta, and has attracted interest from large corporations such as Nestlé who are
looking to improve their supply chain.
Altitude: 200–800m (650–2,600ft)
Harvest: November–March
Varieties: Robusta
NORTH VIETNAM
Arabica grows in the provinces of Son La, Thanh Hoa and Quang Tri in the north of the country,
near the city of Hanoi. There is sufficient altitude for Arabica to grow well, but it is rare to see
high-quality coffees produced here. Despite Arabica making up only three to five per cent of
Vietnam’s total production, this is now enough to make it the fifteenth-largest producer of
Arabica in the world.
Altitude: 800–1,600m (2,600–5,200ft)
Harvest: November–March
Varieties: Bourbon, Sparrow (or Se), Catimor, Robusta
In the southern province of Binh Dong, a worker moves one bag among hundreds in a warehouse
owned by communist exporters. Most of the beans grown in South Vietnam are of the Robusta
variety.
C
YEMEN
Yemen has been producing coffee on a commercial basis for longer than any other country, and
its coffee is distinctive, perhaps challenging, and certainly unusual. Despite a strong demand for
Yemeni coffee over the centuries, its trade has never commoditized. Yemen is unique, from its
coffee varieties and its terraced farming to its processing and its trade.
offee came to Yemen from Ethiopia, either through trade or those making
pilgrimages from Ethiopia to Mecca, and was well established in the
country in the 15th and 16th centuries. Export of its coffee introduced the
world to the port of Mocha, and I think it is fair to say that ‘mocha’ is probably
the most confusing word in all of coffee’s lexicon (see The Term ‘Mocha’).
Only three per cent of the land in Yemen is suitable for farming, water
being the major limiting factor. Coffee is grown on terraced land at high
altitudes and additional irrigation is required to keep the coffee trees healthy.
Many farmers depend on non-renewable sources of deep underground water,
and there is some concern over depleting stocks. Fertilization of the soil is
not particularly common, so there is an additional problem of depleting soil
nutrients. All these factors, coupled with the sheer remoteness of the coffeegrowing
regions, go some way to explaining the huge number and variation of
heirloom varieties of Arabica found in the country, most of them peculiar to
their growing regions.
Yemen’s coffee is picked by hand, with pickers visiting a tree several times
in a season. Despite this, selective picking is not particularly commonplace,
with underripe and overripe cherries often being harvested. Whole cherries
are usually dried in the sun after harvesting, often on the roofs of the farmers’
homes. Rarely do these roofs provide enough space, so the cherries are often
piled too deep to dry correctly, resulting in defects such as uneven drying,
fermentation and mould.
Each producer may only grow a very small amount of coffee. Data from
the 2000 census shows that around 99,000 households produced coffee, and
based on estimates of production the average household produced just 113kg
(249lb) of raw coffee that year.
There remains a strong global demand for Yemeni coffee, and about half
of exports go to Saudi Arabia. Coupled with limited production and relatively
high production costs, this makes it sell for high prices. Demand has not
increased the traceability of the coffee, and it can travel through a network of
middlemen from the farmer through to the exporter. Coffees can also sit for
quite some time (often years) at the point of export, as some exporters sell
their oldest stocks first, and warehouse their newer crops in caverns
underground.
Since the civil war began in 2015, coffee production in Yemen has been
badly affected. The actual volumes produced have decreased only a little, but
exports have fallen to a little over half of what they were before the war. Be
aware that there has been an increase in the fraudulent mislabelling of
Ethiopian coffees, with many being presented as Yemeni coffees to try to
meet the existing demand and achieve a premium price.
THE TERM ‘MOCHA’
Originally, the word referred to the port in Yemen from where coffee was exported. This
spelling soon changed to ‘moka’, and the term was used to describe the potent and
pungent coffees produced in Yemen. Some naturally processed coffees from other countries
are still described this way, such as Moka Harrar from Ethiopia.
The coffees from Yemen were often blended with coffees from Java, and the Mocha-Java
blend was born. However, the name was not protected and thus became a kind of stylistic
term used by many roasters to describe the flavour of a particular blend they created, rather
than where the component coffees came from. The current use of the term ‘mocha’ to
describe a mixture of hot chocolate and espresso only serves to further bewilder the
consumer.
QESHER
Qesher, also Q’shr or Qishr, is a by-product of coffee production. It is the dried, but not
roasted, husks removed from the coffee cherries. In Yemen, these husks are often brewed
like tea as a way to consume a form of coffee. More recently, producers in Central America
have been experimenting with the same product, there called cascara. This is usually just the
dried fruit of the cherry, rather than both the fruit and the dried parchment seen in qesher.
TRACEABILITY
Trying to understand exactly where coffees come from in Yemen can be
extremely confusing. Often the name of the coffee will include the term
‘Mocha’, indicating the port from which it was exported. Usually coffees are
only traceable back to a particular region within Yemen, rather than to the
farm where they were produced. It is also common to see the local names for
different coffee varieties used to describe the coffee, such as Mattari.
In the old city of Al-Masnaah, northwest of Sana’a, a vendor makes coffee for his customers. The
Yemeni coffee trade is several hundred years old and harvests continue to be highly sought after.
Only three per cent of Yemen is suitable for agriculture owing to the scarcity of water. This
terraced plantation in a traditional small fortress town is typical of Yemeni coffee farming
methods.
Having better levels of traceability doesn’t necessarily guarantee better
quality. Often different coffees are blended together before export, and
exported under the most valuable name. The high demand for Yemeni coffee
is based on its unusual, wild and pungent flavours – and these come in part
from defects in the process. If you want to try coffee from Yemen, it is
advisable to source one from a supplier with whom you have already built
some level of trust. Roasters will need to cup through many terrible samples
to find a good one. Buying blindly as a consumer stacks the odds against you
and you may end up with something that tastes dirty, rotten and unpleasant.
TASTE PROFILE
Wild, complex and pungent, a completely distinctive coffee experience, different from other
coffees around the world. For some the wild, slightly fermented fruit quality is off-putting,
while others prize it highly.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 25,408,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 125,000
Please note that westernized spellings of place names in Yemen can vary quite dramatically. Each
region described in Yemen is a governorate, rather than a geographically defined region. Yemen
has 21 governorates, but only 12 grow coffee and even fewer are key producers.
SANA’A
Many of the premium coffees exported from Yemen bear the names of the varieties grown in this
region. Confusingly, Mattari can be used to describe a region (around Bani Matar), and the name
of the variety is probably derived this way. The region is based around the city of Sana’a, one of
the oldest continuously populated cities on earth, and at 2,200m (7,200ft) above sea level, also
one of the highest. As a region, this is the largest producer of coffee in the country.
Altitude: 1,500–2,200m (4,900–7,200ft)
Harvest: October–December
Varieties: Heirloom varieties such as Mattari, Ismaili, Harazi, Dawairi, Dawarani,
Sanani, Haimi
RAYMAH
This small governorate was established in 2004. It produces a reasonable amount of the country’s
coffee and has increasingly been the focus of water-management projects by non-government
organizations to help increase coffee yields in the area.
Harvest: October–December
Altitude: average of 1,850m (6,050ft)
Varieties: Heirloom varieties such as Raymi, Dwairi, Bura’ae, Kubari, Tufahi, Udaini
MAHWEET
Located south of Sana’a, the city of At-Tawila rose to prominence between the 15th and 18th
centuries as a hub for coffee-growing in the region. The city was a collection centre for coffee
before it headed to ports for export.
Altitude: 1,500–2,100m (4,900–6,900ft)
Harvest: October–December
Varieties: Heirloom varieties such as Mahwaiti, Tufahi, Udaini, Kholani
SA’DAH
This governorate has unfortunately been plagued by civil war since 2004. Confusingly sada is an
Arabic term for black coffee, and is popular throughout the Middle East, often served with the
addition of spices.
Altitude: average of 1,800m (5,900ft)
Harvest: October–December
Varieties: Heirloom varieties such as Dawairi, Tufahi, Udaini, Kholani
HAJJAH
This is another small producing region, centred around the capital city of Hajjah.
Altitude: 1,600–1,800m (5,200–5,900ft)
Harvest: October–December
Varieties: Heirloom varieties such as Shani, Safi, Masrahi, Shami, Bazi, Mathani,
Jua’ari
F
BOLIVIA
Bolivia has the potential to produce truly great coffees, and already does in very small
quantities. The country’s entire production is smaller than that of one of Brazil’s larger coffee
farms. Production is shrinking year on year, and coffee farms are disappearing at an alarming
rate. We may soon see coffees from Bolivia (especially great ones) almost disappear.
rustratingly there is little information available about the introduction of
coffee and the history of coffee growing in Bolivia. There are reports of
substantial coffee production in the country going back to the 1880s, but
not a great deal more. The country is large, about the same size as Ethiopia or
Colombia. It is landlocked, which has traditionally posed something of a
challenge to the export of coffee, adding both time and cost.
Bolivia is relatively unpopulated, with just 10.5 million inhabitants. The
population is often characterized as being incredibly poor, with around 25
per cent categorized as living in extreme poverty. The country’s economy is
reliant on minerals and natural gas as well as agriculture, although coffee has
never really featured prominently. It is impossible to ignore the impact on
the economy, and on agriculture, of coca grown for the drug trade. Farmers
are increasingly switching from coffee to coca, because coca provides greater
security for producers because the price is subject to less variance. In 2010
and 2011, while coffee prices were high, anti-drugs programmes funded by
Bolivia and the US managed to encourage more farmers to switch to coffee
production. However, the price of coffee has fallen again and many farmers
have turned once more to coca.
The conditions for growing coffee in Bolivia are, in many ways, ideal.
There is certainly the necessary altitude, and the climate has nicely defined
wet and dry seasons. Most of the coffee grown here is old heirloom varieties,
such as Typica and Caturra. Some excellent, clean and complex coffees have
been coming out of Bolivia recently, although this wasn’t always the case. In
the past, producers picked and pulped the coffees they grew and then
transported the pulp to a central processing station. There were two big
problems: firstly, changes in temperature on the journey to the processing
station could result in the coffee freezing and, secondly, the pulp still
contained enough moisture to keep fermenting. Often this resulted in a loss
of quality or undesirable flavours creeping in. More and more, qualityconscious
producers are doing the post-harvest work on their own farms. The
US has funded the construction of a number of small coffee washing stations
across the country as part of the anti-drugs programme. However, despite
changes to help bolster quality, coffees from Bolivia still lack the reputation
of those from neighbouring countries such as Colombia or Brazil.
Competitions such as The Cup of Excellence have helped shine a light on
the best coffees in Bolivia. I would recommend seeking out and enjoying
them while they are still around. Even though speciality coffee does yield a
greater return, even quality-conscious farmers are still giving up coffee
production.
TRACEABILITY
Coffees in Bolivia are typically traceable down to a single farm or
cooperative. Due to land reforms, large-scale land ownership has reduced
since 1991, and the 23,000 families that produce coffee in Bolivia do so from
small farms, typically 1.2–8 hectares (3–20 acres). The export of Bolivia’s
output is handled by a small number, around thirty, of private exporting
companies.
TASTE PROFILE
The best Bolivian coffees tend to be very sweet and very clean, but relatively rarely are they
particularly fruity in flavour.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 11,411,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 81,000
Coffee-growing regions in Bolivia have never been strongly defined and, as such, different
roasters will use different naming conventions to describe which part of the country the coffee
comes from.
Bolivia is ideal for coffee crops, but its topography means export and production are difficult –
the old route from La Paz to Coroico seen here is known as the world’s most dangerous road.
YUNGAS
Approximately 95 per cent of Bolivia’s coffee is produced in this region, and in the past it held a
reputation for quality in Europe, though less so recently. It can be defined as the region of forest
stretching down the east side of the Andes, and in fact crosses from Peru through Bolivia into
Argentina. The region produces some of the highest-altitude coffee in the world and this is also
where coffee has been grown the longest in Bolivia. In his 1935 book, All About Coffee, Ukers
refers to coffee from here as ‘Yunga’.
Yungas is to the west of La Paz so many coffee buyers have to travel along the famous Yungas
Road, nicknamed the ‘Road of Death’, to reach the coffee producers there. The road is often a
single lane, winding and dug into the sides of the mountains without any barrier to prevent
vehicles dropping up to 600m (2,000ft) into the valleys below.
As the region is so large, many coffee roasters describe coffees as being from a more specific
area, such as Caranavi, Inquisivi or Coroico, within the region.
Altitude: 800−2,300m (2,600–7,600ft)
Harvest: July–November
SANTA CRUZ
This is the most easterly of the departments in Bolivia, and generally it lacks the altitude for highquality
coffees. There is some coffee production around the Ichilo province, although coffee is far
less important as a crop compared to rice or timber. This region is hugely important to the
country’s economy because most of the natural gas is found here.
Altitude: 410m (1340ft)
Harvest: July–November
BENI
This is a large and sparsely populated department in the northeast of the country. Technically,
part of Beni falls within the geographical region of Yungas, but a small amount of coffee is grown
in the department outside the Yungas region. Primarily this is a cattle ranching area, although
many crops are grown here, from rice and cacao to tropical fruits.
Altitude: 155m (500ft)
Harvest: July–November
T
BRAZIL
Brazil has been the world’s largest producer of coffee for more than 150 years. Currently, Brazil
grows around one-third of the world’s coffee, although in the past its market share was as high
as eighty per cent. Coffee was introduced to Brazil from French Guiana in 1727, while Brazil was
still under Portuguese rule.
he first coffee in Brazil was planted by Francisco de Melo Palheta in the
region of Para in the north of the country. According to myth, Palheta
travelled to French Guiana on a diplomatic mission, seduced the wife of
the governor there and was given the seeds hidden in a bouquet from her on
his departure. The coffee he planted on his return home was probably used
just for domestic consumption, and it remained a relatively unimportant crop
until it began to work its way south, being passed from garden to garden as
much as from farm to farm as a crop.
COMMERCIAL PRODUCTION BEGINS
The commercial production of coffee initially began around the Paraiba
River, relatively close to Rio de Janeiro. This area suited coffee, not just
because the land was ideal, but also because its proximity to Rio de Janeiro
would facilitate export. In contrast to the smaller coffee farms that flourished
in Central America, Brazil’s first commercial farms were large, slave-driven
plantations. This industrialized approach is still relatively uncommon in the
rest of the world, and fairly unique to Brazilian coffee production. The
approach to production was aggressive: the most powerful, or forceful, would
win disputes over poorly defined property boundaries and a single slave
looked after four to seven thousand plants. When the soil became depleted
from the intensive farming, the farm would just move on to fresh land.
Coffee production boomed between 1820 and 1830, overtaking the
demand of Brazilian coffee drinkers and beginning to feed the wider global
market. Those who controlled coffee production became both incredibly
wealthy and very powerful and were referred to as ‘coffee barons’. Their
needs would have a significant impact on the government’s policies and its
support of the coffee industry.
By 1830 Brazil produced thirty per cent of the world’s coffee. This rose to
forty per cent by 1840, although the massive increase in supply resulted in a
drop in the global price for coffee. Up until the middle of the 19th century,
Brazil’s coffee industry was reliant on slave labour. More than 1.5 million
slaves had been brought to Brazil to work on the coffee plantations. When the
British put a stop to Brazil’s slave trade with Africa in 1850, Brazil turned to
migrant labour or its internal slave trade. There were great fears that the
abolition of slavery in Brazil in 1888 would endanger the coffee industry, but
the harvest continued successfully that year and onwards.
A SECOND BOOM
A second coffee boom ran from the 1880s through to the 1930s, a period
named after the two most important products of the time. The huge influence
of both coffee barons from Sao Paolo, and dairy producers in Minas Gerais,
led to a political climate known as the café com leite period. This period also
saw the Brazilian government start the practice of valorization, a
protectionist practice designed to stabilize the price of coffee. The
government would buy coffee from producers at an inflated price when the
market was low and hold it until the market was high. This meant stable
prices for coffee barons, and prevented oversupply from lower coffee prices.
By the 1920s Brazil was producing eighty per cent of the world’s coffee,
and coffee financed a huge amount of infrastructure in the country. This
unabated production lead to a massive surplus of coffee that would only
exacerbate the damage of the crash during the Great Depression in the 1930s.
Brazil’s government ended up burning around 78 million bags of stockpiled
coffee in an effort to invigorate coffee prices, though it had little effect on
them.
During World War II there was growing concern in the US that, with the
European markets shut off, declining coffee prices could drive Central and
South American countries towards Nazi or communist sympathy. In an
attempt to stabilize the price of coffee, an international agreement was drawn
up, based on a quota system. This agreement drove up the price of coffee until
it stabilized in the mid 1950s and is considered a precursor to the much wider
International Coffee Agreement (ICA) signed in 1962, which would come to
encompass 42 producing countries. Quotas were fixed according to the
indicator coffee price, determined by the International Coffee Organization
(ICO). If prices dropped then quotas were reduced, and if prices climbed then
quotas were increased.
This agreement lasted until 1989, when it broke down after Brazil refused
to accept a reduction in its quota. Brazil believed that it was an extremely
efficient producer, and could prosper outside of the agreement. The result of
the breakdown of the ICA was an unregulated market, and prices dropped
dramatically over the following five years, resulting in the coffee crisis that
would inspire the Fair Trade movement within coffee production.
ON AND OFF YEARS
With Brazil being such a dominant supplier of the world’s coffee, anything
that affected production in Brazil had a knock-on effect on global pricing.
One such factor was the alternating cycle of Brazil’s annual crop. Over the
years it became clear that Brazil’s harvest would swing each year between a
large and a small harvest. Some work has been done in recent years to try to
mitigate this effect, creating less variation year to year and greater stability.
The reason for this variation in crop is that a coffee tree will naturally have an
alternating cycle of large and small crops, but this can be controlled by light
pruning. Light pruning has not been a common practice in Brazil, with
producers preferring to prune back hard so there is little crop the following
year.
In the past there have been dramatic incidents such as the black frost of
1975, which reduced the following year’s crop by nearly 75 per cent. As a
result of the frost, the global price of coffee almost doubled immediately. In
2000 and 2001 there were two off years in a row, that resulted in a massive
harvest in 2002, with a huge production of coffee. This coincided with
another long period of low prices for coffee, caused by an excess of coffee on
the global market.
MODERN COFFEE PRODUCTION
Brazil is undeniably the most advanced and industrialized coffee-producing
country in the world. With a focus on yield and production, it has not
retained a great reputation for producing coffees of the highest quality. Most
large farms employ relatively crude picking techniques, such as strip picking,
where the entire branch is stripped of its cherries in one go. If the plantations
are large and flat (common in Brazil’s larger coffee farms), they use
harvesting machines to shake the cherries loose from the branches. Neither
method takes ripeness into consideration, and as a result there can be a large
number of unripe cherries in the harvested coffee.
For a long time Brazil also processed a great deal of its coffee by sundrying
the whole cherries on patios (see The Natural Process). The
introduction of the Pulped Natural Process in the early 1990s did help to
improve quality, but for years Brazil’s speciality coffee producers – who may
pick by hand, who may wash their coffee, and who may grow interesting
varieties at higher altitudes – have battled against the country’s reputation
for producing coffees with low acidity and increased body best suited to
espresso blends.
However, while much of Brazil’s coffee grows below the altitudes best
suited to quality, it is still possible to find some very interesting and delicious
coffees there. Equally, the country produces some very clean and sweet
coffees without much acidity that many people (quite rightly) find delicious
and very approachable.
ROBUSTA PRODUCTION
While not a focus of this book, it should be noted that Brazil is one of the world’s primary
producers of Robusta, along with Arabica. In Brazil Robusta is usually called conillon and is
produced in regions such as Rondonia.
DOMESTIC CONSUMPTION
Brazil has been actively trying to increase its internal coffee consumption,
with increasing success. While giving children coffee at school from a young
age may raise some eyebrows, the consumption in Brazil now rivals that of
the United States. No raw coffee can be imported into Brazil, which means
that a large percentage of the coffee grown in Brazil is consumed there,
though generally the quality of coffee for domestic consumption is lower than
that for export.
Coffee bars have appeared throughout the major cities, though the price of
coffee in these places is similar to better coffee bars in the United States and
Europe so they have become another symbol of the increasing divide
between rich and poor in Brazil.
TRACEABILITY
High-quality Brazilian coffees are usually traceable down to a specific farm
(fazenda), whereas the lower-quality coffees are bulk lots and not traceable.
Coffees marked as ‘Santos’ have simply shipped from the port of Santos and
the name has nothing to do with where the coffee was grown. Brazil probably
breaks the rule of thumb, that traceability is linked to quality, as there are
farms in Brazil producing more coffee than the whole of Bolivia. And while
the coffee may be traceable due to the size of production, it will not
necessarily be higher in quality as a result.
A Brazilian worker opens the sluice of a washing tank, raking the clean beans on to a trailer.
TASTE PROFILE
Better Brazilian coffees tend to be low in acidity, heavy in body and sweet, often with
chocolate and nutty flavours.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 207,350,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 55,000,000
There are many different coffee varieties grown across Brazil and many of them were developed
in the country or evolved there, including Mundo Novo, Yellow Bourbon, Caturra and Catuai.
BAHIA
This large state in the east of Brazil is one of the northernmost coffee-growing areas in the
country. In recent years there have been more and more interesting coffees from this region and
many people sat up and took notice when, in the 2009 Cup of Excellence competition, five out of
the top ten lots came from Bahia.
CHAPADA DIAMANTINA
This beautiful area of Brazil, known for its national park, is named after its geology: Chapada
describes the steep cliffs in the region and Diamantina the diamonds found there in the 19th
century. A notable number of farms in the region are producing coffee biodynamically, an organic
method of production originally developed by Rudolph Steiner.
Altitude: 1,000–1,200m (3,300–3,900ft)
Harvest: June–September
CERRADO DE BAHIA/WEST BAHIA
This region lends itself to large-scale, industrialized and irrigated coffee production. In the late
1970s and early 1980s this region was part of a government project to encourage agriculture,
which provided cheap credit and incentives to around six hundred farmers who moved here. By
2006, around 1.5 million hectares (3.7 million acres) of land were being cultivated, although coffee
made up a relatively small part of this. A stable, warm and sunny climate lends itself to higher
yields, so it is a little harder to find something truly astonishing from this part of Brazil.
Altitude: 700–1,000m (2,300–3,300ft)
Harvest: May–September
A farmer in Brazil uses a sieve to separate coffee cherries from the chaff, which is carried away by
the wind.
PLANALTO DE BAHIA
This coffee region has more of a focus on small-scale production, taking advantage of the cooler
temperatures and higher altitudes to produce higher-quality coffees.
Altitude: 700–1,300m (2,300–4,300ft)
Harvest: May–September
MINAS GERAIS
In the southeast of the country, the state of Minas Gerais has some of the highest mountains in
Brazil, providing good altitude for coffee.
CERRADO
Cerrado means tropical savannah but, although one could use this name to refer to the entire
savannah that stretches through many states in Brazil, when it comes to coffee the name usually
refers to the Cerrado region in the west of Minas Gerais. This area is relatively new to coffee
production and perhaps this explains why it is dominated by large, mechanized farms. In fact,
over ninety per cent of the farms in the region are larger than 10 hectares (24 acres).
Altitude: 850–1,250m (2,800–4,100ft)
Harvest: May–September
SUL DE MINAS
Historically this is home to a great deal of Brazil’s coffee production, and there have been many
generations of smallholder farmers here. Perhaps for this reason there are many more
cooperatives in the region. Despite the prevalence of small farms it is still a well-industrialized
area, with a lot of mechanical harvesting.
Certain areas within the region have attracted more attention recently, including Carmo de Minas.
This particular municipality, around the village of Carmo, has a notable number of producers
leveraging the soil and climate to grow better coffees.
Altitude: 700–1,350m (2,300–4,400ft)
Harvest: May–September
CHAPADA DE MINAS
This region is further north, away from the other coffee-growing areas clustered together to the
south. Coffee growing took hold here in the late 1970s. It is a relatively small area of production,
with some producers taking advantage of the flat land to mechanize their farms.
Altitude: 800–1,100m (2,600–3,600ft)
Harvest: May–September
MATAS DE MINAS
This is a region where coffee took root early, and one that became rich on the back of coffee and
dairy between 1850 and 1930. While the area has diversified in recent years, around eighty per
cent of its agricultural income still comes from coffee.
The uneven land here, with steep hillsides, means that harvesting is commonly done by hand.
Even though there are many smallholders in the region (almost fifty per cent of the farms are
smaller than 10 hectares/24 acres) there is not the established reputation for quality one might
expect. However, this is changing for the better and there are plenty of farms producing great
coffee here.
Altitude: 550–1,200m (1,800–3,900ft)
Harvest: May–September
SAO PAOLO
The state of São Paolo contains one of the better-known coffee-growing areas of Brazil, Mogiana.
The region was named after the Mogiana Railroad Company, which built the ‘coffee railroad’ in
1883, leading to better transport and a great expansion of coffee production here.
Altitude: 800–1,200m (2,600–3,900ft)
Harvest: May–September
MATO GROSSO AND MATO GROSSO DO SUL
This area produces only a small amount of Brazil’s annual harvest. Its large, flat highlands are
better suited to the vast number of cattle raised here and the extensive soybean production.
Altitude: average of 600m (2000ft)
Harvest: May–September
ESPIRITO SANTO
While relatively small compared to other coffee-growing regions in Brazil, the second-largest
chunk of the annual harvest is produced in Espirito Santo and the capital city, Vittoria, is a key port
for export. However, nearly eighty per cent of the coffee it produces is conillon (Robusta). In the
south of the region, the farmers tend towards Arabica production and there can be some more
interesting coffees there.
Altitude: 900–1,200m (3,000–3,900ft)
Harvest: May–September
PARANÁ
Some argue that this state is the most southern coffee-growing region in the world, and it is an
important agricultural area for Brazil. Despite having just 2.5 per cent of the country’s land, it
produces nearly 25 per cent of its agricultural output. Coffee was once the biggest crop here, but
after the damage caused by frost in 1975, many producers diversified. While the region once
produced 22 million bags of coffee, now it produces closer to 2 million. The first colonists here
settled close to the coast, but coffee was the reason many moved inland. The lack of altitude
prevents really high-quality coffees being grown here, but the cooler temperatures do help slow
down the maturation of the fruit.
Altitude: up to 950m (3,100ft)
Harvest: May–September
C
COLOMBIA
Coffee was probably first introduced to Colombia in 1723 by the Jesuits, though there are
inevitably different accounts. It spread slowly as a commercial crop to various regions of the
country, but its production did not become significant until the end of the 19th century. By
1912, coffee made up approximately fifty per cent of Colombia’s total exports.
olombia recognized the value of marketing and building its brand
relatively early on. The creation in 1958 of Juan Valdez, the farmer who
represents Colombian coffee, was perhaps their greatest success. Juan
Valdez and his mule were created as the symbol of Colombian coffee and
appeared on bags of coffee and also in various advertising campaigns,
portrayed by three different actors over the years. Juan Valdez became a
point of recognition, particularly in the US, and added value to Colombian
coffee. The character built on the success of early marketing phrases such as
‘Mountain Grown Coffee’, and the constant promotion of ‘100% Colombian
Coffee’ meant that Colombia would stand apart in the minds of consumers
across the world.
This marketing was, and continues to be, undertaken by the Federación
Nacional de Cafeteros (FNC). This organization, created in 1927, is
particularly unusual in the coffee-producing world. While many countries
have organizations involved in the export and promotion of their coffee, few
are quite as large and complex as the FNC. It was created as a private nonprofit
organization to defend the interests of coffee producers and is funded
through a special tax on all coffee exported. As Colombia is one of the largest
coffee producers in the world, the FNC is well funded and has become
something of a monstrous, bureaucratic organization. This bureaucracy is
perhaps inevitable as the FNC is now technically owned and controlled by its
500,000 coffee-producing members. While the FNC is involved in the more
obvious roles of marketing, production and some financial matters, its reach
goes deeper into coffee-growing communities and it has a hand in the
creation of both social and physical infrastructure including rural roads,
schools and health centres. It has also invested in other industries besides
coffee to help spur on regional development and wellbeing.
Colombia is one of the largest producers of coffee in the world, and export is controlled by a
national federation. The country’s well-defined growing regions produce a varied range of crops.
THE FNC AND QUALITY
Recently there has been some friction between the FNC and the more
quality-conscious section of the industry, as the FNC’s perceived interests of
the farmers may not always lead to the best possible quality in the coffee. The
FNC has a research division called Cenicafé which breeds specific varieties
and many believe the promotion of varieties like Castillo has favoured
quantity of yield above cup quality. It is possible to see both sides of the
argument, and as global climate change has an increasing impact on the
stability of Colombia’s production, it is increasingly difficult to argue against
varieties that ensure livelihoods for producers, even at the expense of losing
some great cups of coffee.
TRACEABILITY
As part of the promotion of Colombian coffee, the FNC created the terms
‘Supremo’ and ‘Excelso’. These terms relate only to the size of the bean, and it
is important to understand that they have no relation to quality.
Unfortunately this classification obscures any traceability as coffee marketed
this way may come from many, many farms and be blended before being
sieved mechanically to the necessary sizing grade. Essentially this is generic
coffee, and its naming offers no help when trying to buy quality. The
speciality coffee section of the industry has been working to maintain
traceability, so when looking for something incredibly enjoyable, make sure
the beans come from a distinct place, rather than just being a certain size.
Plantations in the mountainous territory of Risaralda, one of Colombia’s western-central
departments, produce some of the country’s best-known coffee.
TASTE PROFILE
Colombian coffees have a huge range of flavours, from the heavier, chocolatier coffees
through to jammy, sweet, fruity lots. A huge spectrum of flavours exists across the regions.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 49,829,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 14,232,000
Colombia has well-defined growing regions, and they produce an impressive variety of coffees.
Whether you want rounder, heavier coffees or something vibrant and fruity (or something in
between) there is probably a coffee in Colombia that fits the bill. The regions are geographically
defined, rather than politically, so it is not unusual to find that there are common traits to the
coffees produced in each region. If you enjoy one coffee from a region, you will probably enjoy
many of the others.
The coffee trees in Colombia yield two harvests each year, the main harvest and the second
harvest, known locally as the mitaca harvest.
CAUCA
Among others, this area is best known for its coffees grown around Inza and the city of Popayán.
The Meseta de Popayán is a high plateau with attractive growing conditions provided by the
altitude, its proximity to the equator and the surrounding mountains, which protect the coffee
against the humidity of the Pacific and the trade winds from the south. The result is a very stable
climate year round, and the region has notable volcanic soil too. Historically there has been a
predictable, single rainy season each year in October to December.
Altitude: 1,700–2,100m (5,600–6,900ft)
Harvest: March–June (main crop) November–December (mitaca crop)
Varieties: 21% Typica, 64% Caturra, 15% Castillo
VALLE DEL CAUCA
The valley of Cauca is one of the most fertile parts of the country, with the Cauca river running
down between two large Andean mountain ranges. The area was one of the epicentres of the
Colombian armed conflict. Typical of Colombia, most farms are pretty small and the area has
around 75,800 hectares (187,300 acres) under coffee production, split between 26,000 farms
owned by 23,000 families.
Altitude: 1,450–2,000m (4,750–6,600ft)
Harvest: September–December (main crop) March–June (mitaca crop)
Varieties: 16% Typica, 62% Caturra, 22% Castillo
TOLIMA
Tolima is among the last strongholds of Colombia’s notorious rebel group FARC, which had
maintained control of the area until relatively recently. Tolima has suffered in recent years from
the fighting, which has made access difficult. Quality coffees from this area tend to come from
small farmers in very small micro-lots via cooperatives.
Altitude: 1,200–1,900m (3,900–6,200ft)
Harvest: March–June (main crop) October–December (mitaca crop)
Varieties: 9% Typica, 74% Caturra, 17% Castillo
HUILA
The department of Huila has a combination of great soil and great geography for growing coffee,
and some of the most complex, fruit-driven Colombian coffees I have tasted have come from
here. The region has more than seventy thousand coffee growers, covering more than 16,000
hectares (39,500 acres) of land.
Altitude: 1,250–2,000m (4,100–6,600ft)
Harvest: September–December (main crop) April–May (mitaca crop)
Varieties: 11% Typica, 75% Caturra, 14% Castillo
QUINDIO
Quindio is a small region in the centre of the country, just to the west of Bogotá. Coffee is an
incredibly important part of the economy here, as the region suffers high levels of unemployment.
However, the risks involved in growing coffee, due to the effects of climate change and the
increased incidences of diseases affecting coffee plants, has led many farmers to grow citrus fruits
and macadamia nuts instead.
Quindio is home to the National Coffee Park, a theme park based around coffee and coffee
production. At the end of June each year, the municipality of Calarcá has, since 1960, hosted the
National Coffee Party. This is a day of celebration around coffee, including a national beauty
contest of coffee.
Altitude: 1,400–2,000m (4,600–6,600ft)
Harvest: September–December (main crop) April–May (mitaca crop)
Varieties: 14% Typica, 54% Caturra, 32% Castillo
RISARALDA
This is another well-established coffee-producing region and here a large number of farmers
belong to cooperatives. As a result, there has been some interest from ethical labelling
organizations. Coffee plays an important social and economic role in the area, providing jobs and
employment to many. While many people moved to the region in the 1920s, often to grow coffee,
the recession at the turn of the millennium saw some wide-scale emigration back to other regions
and other countries. The capital city is also a transport hub for the regions of Caldas and Quindio,
and the interdepartmental road network is known as the Autopista del Café (Coffee Highway).
Altitude: 1,300–1,650m (4,300–5,400ft)
Harvest: September–December (main crop) April–May (mitaca crop)
Varieties: 6% Typica, 59% Caturra, 35% Castillo
NARIÑO
Some of the highest coffees in Colombia are grown in Nariño, and they can also be some of the
most stunning and complex. It is challenging to grow coffee at these high altitudes in many areas,
as the plants suffer from ‘die back’. However, Nariño is close enough to the equator that the
climate is sufficiently suitable for coffee plants. The vast majority of Nariño’s forty thousand
producers are smallholders with less than 2 hectares (4.4 acres) each. Many have formed groups
and institutions to provide each other with support and to interact with the FNC. In fact, the
average farm size is less than 1 hectare (2.2 acres), and only 37 producers in the region own more
than 5 hectares (11 acres) of land.
Altitude: 1,500–2,300m (4,900–7,500ft)
Harvest: April–June
Varieties: 54% Typica, 29% Caturra, 17% Castillo
CALDAS
Along with Quindio and Riseralda, the state of Caldas is part of the Colombian Coffee-Growing
Axis, or Coffee Triangle. Between them they grow a large portion of the nation’s coffee.
Historically this was considered some of the best coffee in Colombia, but now other regions are
more competitive on that front.
The region is also home to Cenicafé, the National Coffee Research Centre run by the FNC. It is
considered to be one of the world’s leading institutions for research into all aspects of coffee
production, and it is here that a number of varieties unique to Colombia (such as the diseaseresistant
Colombia and Castillo varieties) have been created.
Altitude: 1,300–1,800m (4,300–5,900ft)
Harvest: September–December (main crop) April–May (mitaca crop)
Varieties: 8% Typica, 57% Caturra, 35% Castillo
ANTIOQUIA
This department is the birthplace of both coffee in Colombia and the FNC. This is a key growing
region with around 128,000 hectares (316,000 acres) of coffee, the most of any region. The coffee
is produced by a mixture of large estates and cooperatives of small producers.
Altitude: 1,300–2,200m (4,300–7,200ft)
Harvest: September–December (main crop) April–May (mitaca crop)
Varieties: 6% Typica, 59% Caturra, 35% Castillo
CUNDINAMARCA
This department surrounds the capital city of Bogotá, one of the highest capital cities in the world
at 2,625m (8,612ft) above sea level, higher than coffee would grow. This was the second region in
Colombia to produce coffee for export, with its production peaking just before World War II. At
that time it produced about ten per cent of the nation’s coffee, but the percentage has since
declined. In the past this region had some very large estates, some with over one million coffee
trees.
Altitude: 1,400–1,800m (4,600–5,900ft)
Harvest: March–June (main crop) October–December (mitaca crop)
Varieties: 35% Typica, 34% Caturra, 31% Castillo
SANTANDER
This was one of the first regions in Colombia to produce coffee for export. The region has a little
less altitude than some of the others, and this can often be detected in the coffees as they veer
more towards round and sweet, rather than juicy and complex. A great deal of coffee from this
region is certified by the Rainforest Alliance, and the biodiversity of the region is considered very
important.
Altitude: 1,200–1,700m (3,900–5,600ft)
Harvest: September–December
Varieties: 15% Typica, 32% Caturra, 53% Castillo
NORTH SANTANDER
In the north of the country, bordering Venezuela, this region was producing coffee very early on,
and may have been the first area in Colombia to grow coffee.
Altitude: 1,300–1,800m (4,300–5,900ft)
Harvest: September–December
Varieties: 33% Typica, 34% Caturra, 33% Castillo
SIERRA NEVADA
This is another region at lower altitudes, and again the coffees here tend to be heavier and
rounder, rather than more elegant and lively. Coffee is grown on the Andean mountains in this
area and the incredibly steep hillsides (ranging from fifty to eighty degrees) offer a particular
challenge to the farmers. The name, a common one in many Spanish-speaking countries,
translates as ‘snow-topped mountains’.
Altitude: 900–1,600m (3,000–5,200ft)
Harvest: September–December
Varieties: 6% Typica, 58% Caturra, 36% Castillo
I
COSTA RICA
Coffee has been grown in Costa Rica since the early 19th century. When the country’s
independence from Spain was declared in 1821, the municipal government gave away free
coffee seeds to encourage production and records show there were around seventeen thousand
trees in Costa Rica at that point.
n 1825 the government continued its promotion of coffee by exempting it
from certain taxes, and in 1831 the government decreed that if anyone grew
coffee on fallow land for five years, they could claim ownership of it.
While a small amount of coffee had been exported to Panama in 1820, the
first real exports began in 1832. Although this coffee was ultimately bound for
England, it first passed through Chile where it was rebagged and renamed as
‘Café Chileno de Valparaíso’.
Direct export to England followed in 1843, not long after the English
became increasingly invested in Costa Rica. This ultimately led to the
establishment of the Anglo-Costa Rican Bank in 1863, which provided
finance to allow the industry to grow.
For nearly fifty years, between 1846 and 1890, coffee was the sole export
of the country. Coffee drove infrastructure, such as the creation of the first
railroads linking the country to the Atlantic, as well as funding the San Juan
de Dios Hospital, the first post office and the first government printing office.
It would have an impact on culture too, as the National Theater is a product
of the early coffee economy, along with the first libraries and the Santo
Tomás University.
Costa Rica’s coffee infrastructure had long given it an advantage when it
came to fetching a better price on the international market. The wet process
had been introduced in 1830, and by 1905 there were two hundred wet mills
in the country. Washed coffees achieved higher prices, and at this time
processing coffee in this way added to its perceived quality.
The coffee industry continued to grow until it began to reach its
geographical limits. The population was still spreading from San José to the
rest of the country, and farmers were looking for new land upon which to
grow crops. However, not all of the land in the country was suitable for
growing coffee, something that still checks the growth of the industry to date.
It is undeniable that Costa Rican coffee held a good reputation and
achieved good prices for its coffees for a very long time, even though the
coffees it was producing were typically clean and pleasant rather than
interesting or unusual. There was a drive in the later part of the 20th century
to move away from heirloom varieties, towards high-yielding varieties. While
higher yields make economic sense, many in the speciality coffee industry felt
that the cup quality decreased and became even less interesting. However,
there have been recent changes that have brought a great deal of interest back
to the higher-quality coffees produced in the country.
THE GOVERNMENT’S ROLE
Right from the start, coffee production was strongly encouraged in Costa
Rica, with land being given away to those who wished to grow the crop on it.
In 1933 the government, under pressure from the coffee-growing
community, created the rather bombastically titled Institute for the Defence
of Coffee. Initially the institute was to play a role in trying to prevent small
coffee growers from being exploited by those who bought their coffee cherry
cheaply, processed it and sold it for a much greater profit. They did this by
setting a limit on the profits that could be made by larger processors.
In 1948 the government body for coffee became the Oficina del Café,
though some of the responsibilities for coffee went to the Department of
Agriculture. This organization became the Instuto del Café de Costa Rica
(ICAFE), which still exists today. ICAFE has a wide-ranging involvement in
the coffee industry, running experimental research farms and promoting the
quality of Costa Rican coffee worldwide. It is funded by a 1.5 per cent tax on
all exports of coffee from Costa Rica.
The Doka Coffee plantation in San Isidro de Alajuela is typical of Costa Rica’s organized coffee
production. Wet mills widely adopted in the 19th century are one of its export trade’s many
advantages.
THE MICRO MILL REVOLUTION
Costa Rican coffee had a long-standing reputation for good quality, and as
such fetched a premium price in the commodity marketplace. What it lacked,
as the speciality coffee market developed, was much in the way of traceable
coffee. Typically coffees exported from Costa Rica around the turn of the
millennium carried marks that were essentially brands created by the large
mills or beneficios. These brands obscured exactly where the coffee had been
grown and the unique terroir or qualities that it may possess. There was little
in the processing chain to keep the individual lots distinct.
In the mid to late 2000s, however, there was a dramatic increase in micro
mills. Farmers were investing in small-scale post-harvest equipment of their
own and doing more of the processing themselves. This meant they were able
to increase control over their coffee and the diversity of styles and coffees
from all regions of Costa Rica dramatically increased. In the past, a unique
and unusual coffee would have been blended in with coffees of neighbouring
farms, but not any longer.
This makes Costa Rican coffees exciting to explore, as it is now easier than
ever to taste several different coffees from a particular area side by side, and
begin to see the effect geography can have on taste.
Costa Rica’s rapidly growing tourist trade has encouraged tours of coffee farms thoughout the
country, some of which are adopting organic farming methods.
COFFEE AND TOURISM
Costa Rica is the most developed, and is considered the safest, of the Central
American countries. This makes it an incredibly popular tourist destination,
especially with North Americans. Tourism has come not only to displace
coffee as the primary source of income from abroad, but has also collided and
combined with it. Ecotourism is particularly popular in Costa Rica, and it is
possible to visit and take tours of many coffee farms in the country. Typically
those offering tours are the larger farms, with less focus on absolute quality,
but it is nonetheless interesting to have the opportunity to see how coffee
farming works up close.
TRACEABILITY
Currently land ownership is extremely common in Costa Rica, with ninety
per cent of coffee producers there owning small- to medium-sized farms. As
such it is possible to find coffees traceable to an individual farm or a
particular cooperative.
Queues of pickers at Carrizal de Alajuela wait to measure their freshly harvested crop. The
plantation specializes in growing and selling high-quality coffee for export.
Baskets of freshly picked cherries at the Doka Coffee plantation. Workers receive greater profits
according to the percentage and size of ripe fruit picked.
TASTE PROFILE
Costa Rican coffees are typically very clean and sweet, though often very light bodied.
However, recently micro mills are producing a wider range of flavours and styles.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 4,586,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 1,486,000
Costa Rica has been successful in the past in marketing its coffees under the names of the regions
that produce them. However, there is a wide diversity of flavours within each region, so it is well
worth exploring each of the different regions to see what they can produce.
CENTRAL VALLEY
With the capital city of San José located here, this is the most heavily populated region in Costa
Rica, and the one that has been growing coffee for the longest. It is typically divided into the subregions
of San José, Heredia and Alajuela. There are three key volcanoes in the area – Irazu, Barva
and Poas – which affect the topography and the soil.
Altitude: 900–1,600m (3,000–5,200ft)
Harvest: November–March
WEST VALLEY
The first farmers settled in the West Valley region during the 19th century and brought coffee with
them. The region is divided into six sub-regions, centred around the cities of San Ramón,
Palmares, Naranjo, Grecia, Sarchi and Atenas. The city of Sarchi lends its name to a specific coffee
variety called Villa Sarchi. The highest altitudes in the region are found around Naranjo, and some
stunning coffees can be found throughout this area.
Altitude: 700–1,600m (2,300–5,200ft)
Harvest: October–February
TARRAZÚ
The region of Tarrazú has a long-standing reputation for quality, and for years the coffee from
here could almost have been considered a high-quality grade. That coffee was probably just a mill
grade collected from different farms and blended together to create a large lot. However, the
brand of Tarrazú gained sufficient strength over the years that coffee from outside the region was
being marketed as Tarrazú to increase its value. The highest coffee farms in the country are in this
region and, like many of the other regions, it benefits from a distinct dry season during harvest.
Altitude: 1,200–1,900m (3,900–6,200ft)
Harvest: November–March
TRES RIOS
A small region just to the east of San José, Tres Rios also benefits from the effects of the Irazu
volcano. This area was considered relatively remote until recently, but now the greatest challenge
to the coffee-growing industry is no longer gaining access to power or infrastructure, but the
threat from urban development. More land is required for housing, and Tres Rios is producing
less and less coffee each year, as land is sold for property development.
Altitude: 1,200–1,650m (3,900–5,400ft)
Harvest: November–March
OROSI
Another small region but further east from San José, Orosi has over a century of coffee
production in its history. The region is essentially a long valley, compromising the three subregions
of Orosi, Cachí and Paraíso.
Altitude: 1,000–1,400m (3,300–4,600ft)
Harvest: August–February
BRUNCA
The region of Brunca is split into two cantons: Coto Brus, which borders Panama, and Pérez
Zeledón. Of the two, Coto Brus depends more on coffee as an integral part of its economy. Italian
settlers arrived here after World War II and, with Costa Ricans, started coffee farms in the area.
Pérez Zeledón’s coffee was first planted and produced by settlers from the Central Valley region
of the country, towards the end of the 19th century. A lot of the coffee grown in this region is
either Caturra or Catuai.
Altitude: 600–1,700m (2,000–5,600ft)
Harvest: August–February
TURRIALBA
The harvest in this region is earlier than most, due to the weather and particularly the rainfall in
the area. With less defined wet and dry seasons, it isn’t unusual to see multiple flowerings on
coffee trees here. The weather may present something of a challenge for coffee production, as
coffees of very high quality are relatively scarce.
Altitude: 500–1,400m (1,600–4,600ft)
Harvest: July–March
GUANACASTE
This western region is large but there are only relatively small areas of it under coffee. The area is
more dependent on beef ranching and rice than on coffee. There is still a sizeable production,
though much of it is grown at lower altitudes making stunning coffees less common here.
Altitude: 600–1,300m (2,000–4,300ft)
Harvest: July–February
C
CUBA
Coffee came to Cuba from the island of Hispaniola in 1748, but there was little coffee industry
to speak of until the influx of French settlers in 1791, fleeing the Haitian revolution. By 1827
there were around two thousand coffee farms on the island and coffee became a major export,
generating more money than sugar.
astro’s revolution, from 1953 to 1961, brought with it the nationalization
of coffee farms and production dropped almost immediately. Those who
volunteered to farm coffee had no experience and those who had
previously worked the land had fled the country in the wake of the revolution.
Coffee production struggled on the island, and little in the way of incentives
or encouragement from the government did much to bolster the industry,
though production did peak in the 1970s at around 30,000 tonnes (30,000
tons) of coffee. As Cuba’s coffee industry was faltering, many Central
American countries continued to enjoy greater exports and success in
international markets.
The breakdown of the Soviet Union left Cuba increasingly isolated, and
the trade embargo placed on Cuba by the United States removed a major
potential market. Japan has been the major importer of Cuban coffee, though
Europe remains a strong market. The best coffees are typically exported,
usually around one-fifth of the total production, leaving the rest for domestic
consumption. Cuba’s own production does not cover domestic demand and
in 2013 the country spent nearly $40 million on imported coffee. The coffee
being imported into Cuba is not of the highest quality so it is relatively cheap,
but high market prices have led to the reappearance of the habit of mixing in
roasted peas to bulk out the coffee.
‘CUBAN COFFEE’
A number of Cuban coffee preparations have spread around the world, including Cortadito,
Café con Leche and Café Cubano. The latter refers to an espresso that is sweetened as it is
brewed, by adding sugar to the ground coffee.
In the United States especially, and in other places, it is not uncommon to see ‘Cuban
Coffee’ advertised. True Cuban coffee is illegal in the United States due to the trade
embargo, but this term is often used to describe a Café Cubano. Coffees, often from Brazil,
are selected to represent the flavours one might expect from Cuba but there are, of course,
concerns about confusion among customers and mislabelling of goods.
Right now Cuban coffee production remains low at around 6,000–7,000
tonnes (6,600–7,700 tons) a year. Much of the equipment used is old, and
many producers are still reliant on mules. Roads are often badly damaged by
alternating rain and drought and are poorly maintained. Coffee is usually
dried in the sun, though some mechanical drying takes place, and most of the
coffees grown for export are washed. Cuba’s climate and topography are well
suited to coffee growing and its scarcity may add much to its value, but there
are many challenges facing those producers wishing to create high-quality
coffees.
TRACEABILITY
Cuban coffees are unlikely to be traceable down to a single farm, and are
often only traceable down to a particular region or sub-region of the country.
Though the climate and topography suit the crop, Cuba’s coffee industry suffers from poor
infrastructure and equipment.
TASTE PROFILE
Cuban coffees have a typical island coffee profile: relatively low in acidity with a heavier body.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 11,239,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 100,000
Cuba is the largest island in the Caribbean. Much of it is relatively low-lying plains but there are
some mountainous areas suitable for coffee.
SIERRA MAESTRA
This mountainous region runs the length of the southern coast and has a long history of guerrilla
warfare, from the 1500s to the revolution in the 1950s. Most of the coffee production on the island
is located here.
Altitude: 1,000–1,200m (3,300–3,900ft)
Harvest: July–December
Varieties: Mostly Typica, some Bourbon, Caturra, Catuai, Catimor
SIERRA DEL ESCAMBRAY
A small amount of Cuba’s coffee is grown in this mountain range in the middle of the island.
Altitude: 350–900m (1,100–3,000ft)
Harvest: July–December
Varieties: Mostly Typica, some Bourbon, Caturra, Catuai, Catimor
SIERRA DEL ROSARIO
Coffee farms have existed in this region since 1790, though relatively little of Cuba’s coffee is
grown here now. Instead the mountains are home to Cuba’s first Biosphere Reserve, and this is a
protected area.
Altitude: 300–550m (1,000–1,800ft)
Harvest: July–December
Varieties: Mostly Typica, some Bourbon, Caturra, Catuai, Catimor
C
DOMINICAN REPUBLIC
Coffee came to the Spanish-controlled portion of the island of Hispaniola, what is now the
Dominican Republic, in 1735. The first plantings were probably on a hill in Bahoruco Panzo, near
Neyba. By the end of the 18th century, coffee had become the second most important crop
after sugar, though both relied heavily on slavery until the revolution of 1791.
offee production really took root between 1822 and 1844, particularly in
the region of Valdesia in the southern mountains. This region contains
several coffee-growing areas and became the primary production area in
the country by 1880.
By 1956 the country had started to export coffees from specific regions,
predominantly Bani, Ocoa and Valdesia. In the 1960s the farmers in these
regions became more organized, and a mill was opened in 1967 with 155
members.
As in many coffee-producing countries, the turmoil and unpredictability
of prices at the end of the 20th century have lead to a decreased dependence
on coffee as an export product. Many producers diversified into beans or
avocados, though a good number of them have retained a small amount of
coffee in case prices recover.
Although Valdesia is not one of the main government-designated growing
regions, they have sought to protect its origin name with the launch, in 2010,
of the Café de Valdesia brand.
Crops from the mountainous Barahona region in the Dominican Republic are of especially high
quality.
EXPORT VS DOMESTIC CONSUMPTION
Interestingly it seems that since the late 1970s the quantity of coffee
produced in the Dominican Republic has varied little, but exports have
dropped dramatically. Currently only about twenty per cent of the coffee
harvested is sold for export. This is because domestic coffee consumption is
relatively high at approximately 3kg (6½lb) per person per year, more than
the United Kingdom. In 2007, around half of exports were shipped via Puerto
Rico, though this acts as a gateway to the United States. The rest of the coffee
was destined for Europe and Japan.
Since 2001, more and more of the coffee destined for export has been
organically grown and certified, adding value and revenue to the industry.
But while organic production is overall a good thing, it should be reiterated
that it does not necessarily make a better cup of coffee.
Some argue that the high domestic consumption of coffee in the
Dominican Republic has resulted in lower quality overall, as the coffee is not
competing with other exporting countries for this particular market.
Nonetheless, there are still great coffees to be found in the Dominican
Republic.
TRACEABILITY
While it is possible to get some extremely traceable coffees, usually down to a
particular farm, much of what is exported is not particularly traceable past
the growing region. These coffees are often graded by bean size, with
designations such as ‘Supremo’, which may carry a premium but not one that
is based on cup quality.
TASTE PROFILE
Typical of coffees grown on islands, the better lots tend to be quite mild, low to middling in
acidity and relatively clean.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 10,075,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 400,000
The climate in the Dominican Republic is a little different to many other coffee-producing
countries. It doesn’t have clear seasons, neither in terms of temperature nor in terms of rainfall.
This means that coffee production is often taking place, to some extent, throughout the year,
though the main harvest tends to be from November to May.
BARAHONA
This region is on the southwest side of the island and the coffee here is grown in the Bahoruco
mountain range. The area has established a reputation for high quality, compared to the island’s
other regions. Agriculture is the main industry here, and coffee the main product.
Altitude: 600−1,300m (2,000–4,300ft)
Harvest: October–February
Varieties: 80% Typica, 20% Caturra
CIBAO
Coffee is an important product in this region, along with rice and cacao. Cibao is on the north
side of the island, and its name means ‘place where rocks abound’. The name refers specifically to
the valley between the Central and Septentrional mountain ranges.
Altitude: 400–800m (1,300–2,600ft)
Harvest: September–December
Varieties: 90% Typica, 10% Caturra
CIBAO ALTURA
This region is defined as being the higher-altitude areas within the Cibao region.
Altitude: 600−1,500m (2,000–4,900ft)
Harvest: October–May
Varieties: 30% Typica, 70% Caturra
CENTRAL MOUNTAINS (CORDILLERA CENTRAL)
This mountain range is the highest in the Dominican Republic, and is also known as the
‘Dominican Alps’. The geology of the region is notably different from the surrounding areas so
the coffee here is the only coffee on the island that is grown on granite substrate, rather than
calcium.
Altitude: 600−1,500m (2,000–4,900ft)
Harvest: November–May
Varieties: 30% Typica, 65% Caturra, 5% Catuai
NEYBA
This region (also spelled Neiba) is named after its capital city, and is in the southwest of the island.
The region is quite flat and low and is primarily used for grapes, plantain and sugar, but coffee
does grow higher up in the Sierra del Neyba mountains.
Altitude: 700−1,400m (2,300–4,600ft)
Harvest: November–February
Varieties: 50% Typica, 50% Caturra
VALDESIA
This is probably the best known of the growing regions on the island, and has been award a
Denomination of Origin to protect the value of its exports. As it is well defined and protected, it
has gained a good reputation, and a small premium associated with it.
Altitude: 500−1,100m (1,600–3,600ft)
Harvest: October–February
Varieties: 40% Typica, 60% Caturra
A
ECUADOR
Coffee came relatively late to Ecuador, arriving in around 1860 in the province of Manabí.
Coffee production spread throughout the country and by around 1905 exports to Europe began
from the port of Manta. Ecuador is one of the relatively few countries to grow both Arabica and
Robusta coffee.
fter disease ravaged much of the cocoa crop in 1920s, many farmers began
to focus on coffee. Exports began to grow from 1935, and what was
220,000 bags then became around 1.8 million bags by 1985. The world
coffee crisis of the 1990s caused an inevitable drop in production, but by 2011
production was back to around one million bags per year. Until the 1970s
coffee had been Ecuador’s main export crop, but it was later replaced by oil,
shrimps and bananas.
Ecuadorians consume more soluble coffee than they do fresh and,
interestingly, the cost of coffee production in Ecuador is high enough that
soluble coffee manufacturers there import coffee from Vietnam instead of
buying it in Ecuador.
Ecuador does not hold a great reputation for quality coffee. In part this is
because forty per cent of its production is Robusta but still most of Ecuador’s
exported coffee is relatively low quality. To keep production costs down,
much of the crop is dried either on the tree before picking, or on patios, and
the term to describe this natural process locally is café en bola. This coffee
generally ends up in soluble coffee, and around 83 per cent of the country’s
export has been naturally processed. Colombia is one of the main importers
because manufacturers of soluble coffee there will pay a better price than
local ones. This is because Colombian coffee is expensive due to the strength
of the national brand in foreign markets.
While coffee has been produced in Ecuador for a long time, there are those
who feel that it is only now worth considering coffee from this country as a
hidden gem full of potential. There is certainly the geography and climate to
produce extraordinary coffees, and it will be interesting to see if investment
from the speciality coffee industry results in some great new coffees hailing
from Ecuador in the future.
Ecuadorian coffee crops are not recognized for their quality, as much of the harvest is processed
naturally – a method known locally as cafe en bola.
TRACEABILITY
It is rare to find coffee traceable down to a single estate. It is more common to
see a lot from a group of producers, or sometimes a lot can be put together by
an exporter. Lots like this can come from a large numbers of farmers, but may
still be excellent.
TASTE PROFILE
Coffees from Ecuador are beginning to live up to their potential for quality, with sweeter and
more complex coffees becoming available. They are made more interesting by a pleasant
acidity.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 16,144,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 600,000
Ecuadorean coffees are coming to increasing prominence within the speciality coffee industry,
and while lower-lying regions are less likely to produce great coffees, the higher altitude areas
hold great potential.
MANABI
Nearly fifty per cent of the Arabica in Ecuador is produced here. But with almost all of the coffee
in this region growing below 700m (2,300ft), this area does not have the necessary altitude to
produce excellent coffees.
Altitude: 500–700m (1,600–2,300ft)
Harvest: April–October
Varieties: Typica, Caturra, Robusta
LOJA
Around twenty per cent of the Arabica in the country comes from this mountainous region in the
south, and from a geographical perspective this region has the greatest potential for quality.
Most of the focus from the speciality coffee sector is here. However, the area is susceptible to
difficult weather which can, as happened in 2010, result in an increase in damage from coffee
berry borer.
Altitude: up to 2,100m (6,900ft)
Harvest: June–September
Varieties: Caturra, Bourbon, Typica
EL ORO
This coastal region in the southwest of the country includes part of the Andes mountain chain and
produces less than ten per cent of Ecuador’s annual coffee production. The main focus on coffee
is around the town of Zaruma (not to be confused with the region of Zamora).
Altitude: 1,200m (3,900ft)
Harvest: May–August
Varieties: Typica, Caturra, Bourbon
ZAMORA CHINCHIPE
This province is just to the east of Loja and has sufficient altitude to produce great coffee,
although only four per cent of the country’s Arabica is produced here. Organic production is
relatively common in this area.
Altitude: up to 1,900m (6,200ft)
Harvest: May–August
Varieties: Typica, Caturra, Bourbon
GALAPAGOS
A small amount of coffee is produced on the Galapagos islands, and its proponents claim that the
climate there mimics a much higher altitude, allowing higher-quality coffee to be grown. Coffees
like this can be extremely expensive, and rarely does the quality in the cup match the price.
Altitude: 350m (1,100ft)
Harvest: June–September and December–February
Varieties: Bourbon
T
EL SALVADOR
Coffee was first produced commercially in El Salvador in the 1850s. It soon became a favoured
crop, with tax breaks for producers. Coffee production became an important part of the
economy and the country’s main export, and by 1880 El Salvador was the fourth-largest
producer of coffee in the world, producing more than twice as much as it does today.
he growth of the coffee industry came about in part because El Salvador
was moving away from its previous dominant crop, indigo, after the
invention of chemical dyes in the mid-19th century. The land used to grow
indigo had been controlled by a relatively small landed elite. Coffee
production required a different type of land, so these landed families used
their influence in government to pass laws to push the poor from their land so
that it could be absorbed into the new coffee plantations. Compensation to
those indigenous people was all but nonexistent, sometimes they were simply
offered the chance to work seasonally on the newly established coffee
plantations.
By the early 20th century, El Salvador would become one of the most
progressive of the Central American nations, the first with paved highways
and investment in ports, railroads and lavish public buildings. Coffee helped
fund infrastructure and integrate indigenous communities into the national
economy, but it also served as a mechanism for the landed elite to maintain
political and economic control over the country.
The aristocracy of the time exerted their power through the support of
military rule from the 1930s, and this became a period of relative stability.
The growth of the coffee industry in the decades that followed helped support
the development of a cotton industry and light manufacturing. Up until the
civil war of the 1980s, El Salvador had a reputation for quality and efficiency
in its coffee production, with well-established relationships with importing
countries. The civil war, however, would have a dramatic impact on this, as
production fell and foreign markets looked elsewhere for their coffee.
El Salvador’s unusually high percentage of heirloom coffee varieties and agriculturally rich
farmland mean exports for its sweet flavoured coffees have increasing potential.
HEIRLOOM VARIETIES
Despite the drop in production and exports, the civil war had an unexpected
benefit for the coffee industry. Throughout much of Central America at the
time, coffee producers were replacing their heirloom varieties with newly
developed high-yield varieties. The cup quality of these new varieties did not
match that of the heirloom varieties, but yield was favoured over quality. El
Salvador, however, never went through this process. The country still has an
unusually high percentage of heirloom Bourbon trees, in total producing
about 68 per cent of its coffee. Combined with its well-drained, but mineralrich
volcanic soils, the country has the potential to produce some stunningly
sweet coffees.
THE PACAS VARIETY
In 1949 a mutation of the Bourbon variety was discovered by Don Alberto Pacas on one of
his farms. It was named after him, and was later crossed with Maragogype, a variety of coffee
with very large beans, to create the Pacamara variety. Both desirable varieties remain in
production in the region and in neighbouring countries. For more information on varieties,
see Coffee Varieties.
This has been the focus of much of El Salvador’s recent coffee marketing
and it has worked hard to regain its standing among the coffee-producing
countries and re-establish old relationships with consuming nations. Large
estates still exist in El Salvador, but there are also a lot of small farms. It is a
great country to explore, as there are many stunning coffees, full of sweetness
and complexity.
In a sea of ripe coffee cherries at El Paste near Santa Ana, this worker shovels the harvest ready for
processing. The Apaneca-Ilamatpec region is the biggest producer of coffee in El Salvador.
TRACEABILITY
The infrastructure in place means that it is relatively easy to retain the
traceability on high-quality coffees right back to farm level, and many farms
are able to create micro-lots based around process and variety.
ALTITUDE CLASSIFICATIONS
El Salvador still sometimes classifies coffee based on the altitude at which it was grown.
These classifications have no relation to either quality or traceability.
Strictly High Grown (SHG): grown above 1,200m (3,900ft)
High Grown (HG): grown above 900m (3,000ft)
Central Standard: grown above 600m (2,000ft)
Although volcanic activity can threaten production, plantations in the Apaneca-Ilamatepec region
consistently grow competition-winning coffee due to the excellent soil.
TASTE PROFILE
The Bourbon variety coffees from El Salvador are famously sweet and well balanced, with a
pleasing soft acidity to give balance in the cup.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 6,377,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 623,000
Most coffee roasters do not use the region names when describing coffees. While they are
distinct, well-defined regions, some would argue that El Salvador itself is so small that it could be
classified as a single region, with clearly defined pockets of coffee growing within it.
APANECA-ILAMATEPEC MOUNTAIN RANGE
With a reputation for great quality, this area produces many competition-winning coffees, despite
the volcanic activity here. The Santa Ana volcano erupted as recently as 2005, having a massive
impact on production for a couple of years. This is the largest-producing region of the country
and it was probably here that coffee was first cultivated in El Salvador.
Altitude: 500–2,300m (1,600–7,500ft)
Harvest: October–March
Varieties: 64% Bourbon, 26% Pacas, 10% others
ALOTEPEC-METAPAN MOUNTAIN RANGE
This mountain range is one of the wetter regions of El Salvador, with over one-third more rainfall
than average. The region borders both Guatemala and Honduras, yet despite its proximity to
those countries the coffees here remain distinct and different.
Altitude: 1,000–2,000m (3,300–6,600ft)
Harvest: October–March
Varieties: 30% Bourbon, 50% Pacas, 15% Pacamara, 5% others
EL BÁLSAMO-QUEZALTEPEC MOUNTAIN RANGE
Some of the coffee farms in this region overlook the capital city of San Salvador, from high up on
the sides of the Quetzaltepec volcano. This region was home to the pre-Hispanic Quetzalcotitán
civilization, who worshipped the feathered serpent god Quetzalcoat, still a common symbol in
Salvadorian culture today. The mountain range also takes its name from the Peruvian Balsam
produced there, an aromatic resin used in perfumes, cosmetics and medicines.
Altitude: 500–1,950m (1,600–6,400ft)
Harvest: October–March
Varieties: 52% Bourbon, 22% Bourbon, 26% mixed & others
CHICHONTEPEC VOLCANO
Coffee was late coming to this region in the centre of the country, with barely fifty bags of coffee
being produced here in 1880. However, the volcanic land is extremely fertile, and today the area
is home to many coffee farms. The traditional practice of planting alternating rows of coffee and
orange trees for shade is still common: some believe this imparts an orange blossom quality to
the coffee, though others attribute this soft citrus element to the Bourbon variety that is grown
here.
Altitude: 500–1,000m (1,600–3,300ft)
Harvest: October–February
Varieties: 71% Bourbon, 8% Pacas, 21% mixed & others
TEPECA-CHINAMECA MOUNTAIN RANGE
This region is the third-largest producer of coffee in the country. Here they serve coffee with corn
tortillas called tustacas, made with salt and dusted with sugar or made with a little panela (cane
sugar).
Altitude: 500–2,150m (1,600–7,100ft)
Harvest: October–March
Varieties: 70% Bourbon, 22% Pacas, 8% mixed & others
CACAHUATIQUE MOUNTAIN RANGE
Captain General Gerardo Barrios was the first Salvadorian president who saw the potential
economic value of coffee and it is rumoured that he was one of the first to cultivate coffee in El
Salvador, on his property in this region, close to Villa de Cacahuatique, now called Ciudad
Barrios. This mountain range is known for its abundance of clay, used to make pots, platters and
decorative items. Farmers here often have to dig large holes in the clay-like earth and fill them
with rich soil, in which to plant their young trees.
Altitude: 500–1,650m (1,600–5,400ft)
Harvest: October–March
Varieties: 65% Bourbon, 20% Pacas, 15% mixed & others
The powdery remains of coffee shells at La Majada estate in El Salvador are recylced for use as
compost. Minerals and trace elements in the waste help nourish soil for the plants.
Washing coffee beans at Finca Vista Hermosa Coffee Plantation, Agua Dulce, Guatemala.
T
GUATEMALA
Many believe that coffee was first introduced to Guatemala by the Jesuits around 1750, though
there are accounts of it being grown and served in the country in 1747. As in El Salvador, coffee
only became an important crop in Guatemala after 1856, when the invention of chemical dyes
reduced demand for indigo, which was at that time the main cash crop.
he government had already made some attempts to diversify away from
indigo. In 1845 it formed the Commission for Coffee Cultivation and
Promotion, which produced educational materials for coffee producers
and also helped establish a price and levels of quality. In 1868 the
government distributed around one million coffee seeds, in an effort to
further stimulate the industry.
When Justo Rufino Barrios came to power in 1871 he made coffee the
backbone of the economy. Unfortunately, his reforms resulted in the
indigenous people of Guatemala being further deprived of their land, as they
led to the sale of around 400,000 hectares (990,000 acres) of what was
considered public land. These became large coffee plantations. The efforts to
stimulate coffee production certainly worked, however, and by 1880 coffee
made up around ninety per cent of Guatemala’s exports.
Coffee would again be involved in the country’s politics following the
global depression in 1930. Jorge Ubico had come to power and worked to
lower the price of coffee to help stimulate export. He built extensive
infrastructure, but gave more power and land to the United Fruit Company
(UFC), an American corporation that grew to be extremely powerful. Ubico
ultimately resigned due to a general strike and protests against him.
There followed a period of democratic free speech, and President Arbenz
proposed a land reform act in 1953 to expropriate land (largely that
controlled by the UFC) to redistribute it for agricultural purposes. Both large
coffee plantation owners and the UFC (supported by the US State
Department) fought against the reforms. In 1954 a CIA coup overthrew the
Arbenz government and the proposed land reforms never took place. This set
the country down a path towards a civil war that lasted from 1960 to 1996.
Many of the issues that provoked the war – poverty, land distribution,
hunger, and racism towards indigenous people – are still issues today.
Guatemala’s coffee production peaked at the turn of the millennium, as
many producers moved away from coffee into macadamia nuts and avocados
after the coffee crisis in 2001. Coffee leaf rust has also been an increasing
problem for producers throughout the country, damaging a large portion of
their production.
TRACEABILITY
Guatemalan coffees should be traceable down to farm level, or down to a
cooperative or producer group. While some regions in Guatemala are now
protected denominations of origin, the country has a long history of
traceability and estates producing high-quality coffee because many farmers
have their own wet mills and process their own coffee.
ALTITUDE GRADING
Similar to other Central American countries, Guatemala uses a version of the altitude
grading.
Prime: grown at 750–900m (2,500–3,000ft)
Extra Prime: grown at 900–1,050m (3,000–3,500ft) Semi Hard Bean: grown at 1,050–1,220m
(3,500–4,000ft)
Hard Bean (HB): grown at 1,220–1,300m (4,000–4,300ft)
Strictly Hard Bean (SHB): grown over 1,300m (4,300ft)
Many Guatemalan farmers have their own wet mills and coffee production facilities, which aids
traceability of beans.
TASTE PROFILE
A wide range of flavours are present in Guatemala’s coffees, from lighter, very sweet, fruity
and complex coffees through to the heavier, richer and more chocolatey cups.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 16,176,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 3,500,000
Guatemala has been more successful than most countries at defining its key regions, and
marketing the coffees from these regions as being quite different from each other. In my
experience, there are some flavour characteristics more common in certain regions, but there are
no hard and fast rules for this.
SAN MARCOS
San Marcos is both the warmest and the rainiest of the coffee-growing regions in Guatemala. The
rains come earlier to the mountain slopes facing the Pacific, so flowering is generally earlier too.
The rainfall can provide challenges to post-harvest drying, so some farms rely on a mixture of sun
drying and mechanical drying. Agriculture is a large part of the economy in this department,
which produces grain, fruit, meat and wool.
Altitude: 1,300–1,800m (4,300–5,900ft)
Harvest: December–March
Varieties: Bourbon, Caturra, Catuai
ACATENANGO
Coffee production in this region is centred around the Acatenango valley, which is named after
the volcano there. In the past, many producers here sold their coffee to ‘coyotes’ who would ship
the cherries over to the Antigua region and process it there. Antigua had a better reputation for
coffee, and so it commanded a higher price. This practice is now less common, as coffees from
Acatenango can be excellent and are becoming more widely recognized so it is more profitable
to keep them properly traceable.
Altitude: 1,300–2,000m (4,300–6,600ft)
Harvest: December–March
Varieties: Bourbon, Caturra, Catuai
ATITLÁN
The coffee farms here are located around lake Atitlán. Sitting at around 1,500m (4,900ft) above
sea level, the lake has captured the minds of writers and travellers over many years because of its
stunning beauty. In the late morning and early afternoon, strong winds are common here and are
known locally as xocomil, ‘the winds that carry away sin’.
There are a number of private nature reserves here, set up to preserve the biodiversity of the area
and help prevent deforestation. Coffee production is under pressure due to increased labour
costs and competition for the labour force. Urban sprawl is also increasing pressure on land use
and some farmers are finding it is more profitable to sell their land than continue to grow coffee.
Altitude: 1,500–1,700m (4,900–5,600ft)
Harvest: December–March
Varieties: Bourbon, Typica, Caturra, Catuai
COBÁN
This region is named after the town of Cobán, which grew and thrived due to the German coffee
producers who held a great deal of power here until the end of World War II. The lush rainforest
comes with a very wet climate, which proves something of a challenge to coffee drying. The
region is also somewhat remote, making transport more difficult and expensive but there are,
nonetheless, stunning coffees coming from here.
Altitude: 1,300–1,500m (4,300–4,900ft)
Harvest: December–March
Varieties: Bourbon, Maragogype, Catuai, Caturra, Pache
NUEVO ORIENTE
Unsurprisingly for a region whose name means ‘New East’, Nuevo Oriente is located in the east of
the country by the border with Honduras. The climate is dryer here and most of the coffee is
produced by smallholders. Coffee production arrived here quite late, beginning in the 1950s.
Altitude: 1,300–1,700m (4,300–5,600ft)
Harvest: December–March
Varieties: Bourbon, Catuai, Caturra, Pache
HUEHUETENANGO
This is one of the better-known regions of Guatemala, and the most enjoyable to pronounce. The
name translates from the Nahautl as ‘place of the ancients’ or ‘place of the ancestors’. This area
has the highest non-volcanic mountains in Central America and they are well suited to coffee
growing. This region is probably the most dependent on coffee as an export and there are some
truly astonishing coffees produced here.
Altitude: 1,500–2,000m (4,900–6,600ft)
Harvest: January–April
Varieties: Bourbon, Catuai, Caturra
FRAIJANES
This coffee-growing plateau surrounds the capital of Guatemala City. There is fairly regular
volcanic activity in the area, which benefits the soil, but occasionally also endangers life and
causes problems with infrastructure. Unfortunately the amount of land under coffee continues to
decrease as the city grows and land use changes.
Altitude: 1,400–1,800m (4,600–5,900ft)
Harvest: December–February
Varieties: Bourbon, Caturra, Catuai, Pache
ANTIGUA
Antigua is probably the best-known coffee-producing region in Guatemala, and one of the bestknown
in the world. The region is named after the city of Antigua, famous for its Spanish
architecture and a UNESCO World Heritage Site. The region attained a Denomination of Origin
in 2000 under the name ‘Genuine Antigua Coffee’, after the market had become devalued by
coffee fraudulently labelled as Antigua. This has prevented coffee from other origins being sold
as Antigua, but it has not stopped the fraudulent practice of bringing cherries in from other
regions to be processed there. Nonetheless, it is possible to find clearly traceable coffees from
Antigua and while some are overpriced, others are of excellent quality and are worth seeking out.
Altitude: 1,500–1,700m (4,900–5,600ft)
Harvest: January–March
Varieties: Bourbon, Caturra, Catuai
Though changing land use and varying temperatures influence the amount of coffee produced
and the way it is processed in Guatemala, much of the coffee is treated in the traditional way and
dried by sun.
T
HAITI
Coffee probably came to Haiti from the island of Martinique, while it was a newly founded
French colony in 1725. The first coffee was likely grown around Terroir Rouge in the northeast of
the country; ten years later another coffee plantation appeared in the mountains in the north of
Haiti. Coffee production rapidly increased on the island, and a number of sources claim that
between 1750 and 1788, Haiti produced between fifty and sixty per cent of the world’s coffee.
he industry would reach its peak in 1788 and the following years of
revolution, ultimately leading to independence in 1804, would see coffee
production rapidly decline. The freeing of the slaves on the island didn’t
just have an impact on the production of coffee, but also led to the country
being ostracized in terms of international trade. However, the industry would
slowly rebuild and see another peak in 1850 before receding again. Coffee
production once again boomed in the 1940s and in 1949, Haiti produced onethird
of the world’s coffee.
Coffee production, like many aspects of Haiti’s economy, suffered under
the Duvalier regimes between 1957 and 1986, and natural disasters would
play a role in further hampering the industry. The collapse of the
International Coffee Agreement led to reports in 1990 of farmers choosing to
burn their coffee trees to make charcoal to sell instead.
In the mid-1990s, an organization called Fédération des Associations
Caféières Natives (FACN) was created. It would buy dried parchment coffee
then mill it, sort it and blend it. The coffee had been washed rather than dry
processed, and this was somewhat unusual.
It created a brand name called Haitian Bleu, referencing the colour of the
raw coffee caused by the washing process, and controlled its route to market.
In doing so it was, for a while, able to lift prices paid to growers. While not
traceable in the way we expect speciality coffee to be today, it did create a
premium around provenance and story. However, mismanagement of the
organization led to declining volumes, and not meeting contracts with
roasters led to the eventual decline and bankruptcy of the FACN.
Bags of coffee lined up for collection in the streets of Portau-Prince. In the 1940s, Haiti produced
one-third of the world’s coffee.
The earthquake in 2010 that devastated the island also devastated the
coffee industry, which had already been in steady decline. Worth $7million in
2000, by 2010 it had dwindled in value to just $1million. There was hope that
coffee would play a role in the country’s economic recovery, alongside
mangoes, the other major crop. Various NGOs (non-governmental
organizations) have worked to invest in the industry, and while there is highquality
washed coffee being exported from the country, the industry remains
very small and is growing slowly.
Brewing coffee in Rivière Froide, in Haiti’s Ouest department.
TRACEABILITY
If you can find high-quality coffee from Haiti then it is going to come, most
likely, from a cooperative of growers. There are no single estates selling
coffee in the country. Haiti consumes almost as much coffee as it produces, so
very little is exported.
TASTE PROFILE
Relatively full-bodied, earthy and sometimes spicy, with a little acidity – a typical ‘island
coffee’ taste profile. Better lots have a soft sweetness.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 10,847,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 350,000
The production of coffee in Haiti has dwindled to the point that it would not be accurate to
describe it as having multiple growing regions.
Altitude: 300–2,000m (980–6,560ft)
Harvest: August–March
Varieties: Typica, Caturra, Bourbon
C
UNITED STATES: HAWAII
Hawaii is the only coffee-producing region in a First-World country. This changes the economics,
as well as the marketing, of the coffee. The producers here have been successful at engaging
consumers directly – often entwining the coffee with a visit to the islands – but many coffee
professionals feel that the quality of the coffee may not merit its price.
offee was first brought to Hawaii in 1817, although these initial plantings
were unsuccessful. In 1825 the governor of Oahu, Chief Boki, was en
voyage from Europe and stopped off in Brazil where he picked up some
coffee plants. These plants did thrive and coffee production was soon
widespread across the Hawaiian islands.
The Bourbon variety was probably brought to the Big Island in 1828, and
the first commercial plantation in Kauai began operation in 1836. However,
plantations in the Hanalei Valley area of Kauai were destroyed by the coffee
blight insect in 1858. The only region that continued to produce coffee from
these initial plantings is the Kona region on the Big Island.
In the late 1800s, the industry attracted immigrants from China and then
Japan, who came to work on the plantations. In the 1920s, many Filipinos
arrived to work on the coffee farms during harvest time and the sugar cane
plantations in the spring.
However, coffee did not become hugely important to the island economy
until the 1980s, when sugar production ceased to be sufficiently profitable.
The event triggered a renewed interest in coffee right across the state.
KONA
The best-known growing region in Hawaii, and one of the best-known in the
world, is the Kona region on the Big Island. A long history of coffee
production has helped cement the reputation of the region, although its
success has lead to its exploitation through the mislabelling of coffee.
Legislation on the island now means that any Kona blend must state the
quantity of coffee from Kona on it, and the use of the ‘100% Kona’ trademark
is carefully controlled. A farm called Kona Kai in California had previously
fought the awarding of any trademark or protection for the name, but in 1996
its executive was found guilty of filling his ‘Kona Coffee’ bags with beans from
Costa Rica.
More recently, the region has been challenged by the problem of coffee
berry borer. The island has introduced a number of measures to combat the
blight, with some success, although there were fears that a reduction in yield
would drive the already high price of Kona coffee even higher.
At the Dole Food Company on Waialua’s coffee and cocoa farm, beans are spread out to be
dried by sun. Waialua is the largest estate on Oahu Island and grows Typica berries.
TRACEABILITY
It will come as no surprise that in a developed country the expectations of
traceability should be high. Coffees are usually traceable down to a specific
farm. In many cases, the farms roast their own coffees to sell direct to
consumers and tourists. Many also export some of their crop, predominantly
to the mainland United States.
KONA GRADING
Kona has its own grading system, mostly based on the size of the beans, but also divided
into Type 1 and Type 2. Type 1 are the standard coffee beans, with two beans per cherry,
while Type 2 coffees are exclusively peaberries.
Within Type 1, Kona Extra Fancy are the largest beans, then they decrease in size through
the following grades: Kona Fancy, Kona Number 1, Kona Select and Kona Prime.
Within Type 2 there are only two grades: Kona Number 1 Peaberry and the smaller Kona
Peaberry Prime.
There are requirements for a maximum level of defects in most of the grades, but these are
quite generous and not themselves a reliable indicator of quality.
TASTE PROFILE
Typically lower in acidity, with a little more body. Approachable but rarely complex and
fruited.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 1,404,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 40,909
Hawaii’s reputation is dominated by a single region: Kona. The other islands are also worth
exploring, however, if you like a typical island coffee with relatively low acidity, a little more body
and less fruitiness in the cup.
KAUAI ISLAND
This growing region is dominated by a single company running 1,250 hectares (3,100 acres) of
coffee production. The Kauai Coffee Company started growing coffee to diversify away from
sugarcane in the late 1980s. Due to its size, it is a heavily mechanized farm.
Altitude: 30–180m (100–600ft)
Harvest: October–December
Varieties: Yellow Catuai, Red Catuai, Typica, Blue Mountain, Mundo Novo
OAHU ISLAND
This is another island that is dominated by the Waialua Estate, which is around 60 hectares (155
acres) in size. This farm, which started production in the early 1990s, is fully mechanized in its
production and also grows cacao.
Altitude: 180–210m (600–700ft)
Harvest: September–February
Varieties: Typica
MAUI ISLAND
Maui has one large commercial coffee farm, Ka’anapali, which has the unusual addition of a
selection of small plots of land with houses and coffee plantations for sale. Although the plots are
owned by different people, the coffee production is done centrally. This large estate was a sugar
plantation from 1860 to 1988, when production was turned over to coffee.
Altitude: 100–550m (350–1,800ft)
Harvest: September–January
Varieties: Red Catuai, Yellow Caturra, Typica, Mokka
KULA, MAUI ISLAND
This small region takes advantage of the slopes of the Haleakala volcano to achieve some decent
elevation for coffee growing. Coffee is relatively new to the area.
Altitude: 450–1,050m (1,500–3,500ft)
Harvest: September–January
Varieties: Typica, Red Catuai
WAIKAPU, MAUI ISLAND
This is the newest region of coffee production in Hawaii. A single farm operates here, held by a
company based in the neighbouring island of Molokai, called Coffees of Hawaii.
Altitude: 500–750m (1,600–2,450ft)
Harvest: September–January
Varieties: Typica, Catuai
KIPAHULU, MAUI ISLAND
This is a very low region on the southeast coast of Maui. Coffee is often grown on organic farms
as part of a diverse set of crops.
Altitude: 90–180m (300–600ft)
Harvest: September–January
Varieties: Typica, Catuai
KAULAPUU, MOLOKAI ISLAND
This region is also dominated by a single coffee company, Coffees of Hawaii. The large farm is
mechanized, often a requirement to reduce operational costs in an environment where labour is
extremely expensive.
Altitude: 250m (800ft)
Harvest: September–January
Varieties: Red Catuai
KONA, BIG ISLAND
Unlike many other growing regions in Hawaii, there is a more diverse industry here with over 630
farms producing coffee. Typically run by individual families, these farms are usually less than 2
hectares (5 acres). Yields here may well be the highest per area of anywhere in the world and as
the farms are so much smaller than elsewhere in Hawaii, it is common to see manual harvesting of
the trees.
Altitude: 150–900m (500–3,000ft)
Harvest: August–January
Varieties: Typica
KAU, BIG ISLAND
Coffee production started in this region relatively recently, after the closure of the sugar mill in
1996. Until 2010, the farmers and cooperatives in the area had to travel to the neighbouring
regions of Puna or Kona to have the coffee processed after harvest. However, a mill has now been
constructed to alleviate the problem.
Altitude: 500–650m (1,600–2,150ft)
Harvest: August–January
Varieties: Typica
PUNA, BIG ISLAND
This region had around 2,400 hectares (6,000 acres) of land under coffee production at the end of
the 19th century, but production ceased as sugar rose to prominence. However, the sugar mill
closed in 1984 and some farmers are starting to grow coffee here again. Most farms in this area
are relatively small – around 1.2 hectares (3 acres).
Altitude: 300–750m (1,000–2,450ft)
Harvest: August–January
Varieties: Red Catuai, Typica
HAMAKUA, BIG ISLAND
Coffee arrived here in 1852, and eight plantations were initially established. Like elsewhere in
Hawaii, sugar soon became the favoured crop so coffee production declined. However, since the
mid 1990s, some farms have started going back to coffee.
Altitude: 100–600m (350–2,000ft)
Harvest: August–January
Varieties: Typica
Kalalau Valley on Kauai Island, typifies the landscape of Hawaii’s plantations.
Coffee crops are well suited to the soil in Honduras but the country’s high rainfall can make it
difficult for farmers to dry beans.
I
HONDURAS
Since it is now the largest producer of coffee in Central America, it is surprising how little is
known about the introduction of coffee to Honduras. What is probably the earliest record, dated
to 1804, discusses the quality of the coffee produced there. This dates the arrival of coffee to
before 1799, as the plants would take a few years to produce a crop.
t has only really been since 2001 that Honduras’ production of coffee has
increased dramatically. While the coffee industry drove the growth and
development of infrastructure in much of Central America during the
1800s, due to Honduras’ late blossoming the infrastructure simply was not
there. This has provided a challenge for quality and has meant that much of
the coffee produced under this new expansion was destined for the
commodity market. Only more recently have we begun to see excellent
coffees coming out of Honduras.
The national coffee institute, the Instituto Hondureño del Café
(IHCAFE), was established in 1970 and is working to improve quality: in
each of the six regions it has defined, there is a coffee-tasting laboratory to
assist local producers.
Honduras was producing just under six million bags of coffee a year by
2011, more than Costa Rica and Guatemala combined. Around 110,000
families are involved in the production of coffee across the country. As for its
future, there are concerns about the impact of leaf rust. A state of national
emergency was declared after harvests were badly damaged in 2012/2013
and the effects of leaf rust usually last a few years.
THE PROBLEM OF CLIMATE
While the land is well suited to growing great coffee, the weather poses a
challenge. The high rainfall often makes it difficult to dry the beans after
processing, so some producers use a combination of sun drying and
mechanical drying. This has landed Honduras with a reputation for
producing great coffees that can fade quite quickly, but much work is being
done to address this problem. Much of the coffee is warehoused before
shipping in extremely hot conditions near Puerto Cortez, which can further
degrade it. There are obviously always exceptions to the rule, however, and
the very best coffees from Honduras generally hold up better over time.
TRACEABILITY
It is possible to get high levels of traceability in Honduras, down to estate
level or down to a specific cooperative or producer group.
CLASSIFICATION OF COFFEE
Honduras uses a similar system to El Salvador and Guatemala, which describes and
categorizes coffees by the altitude at which they were grown. Above 1,200m (3,900ft) a
coffee can be described as Strictly High Grown (SHG), and above 1,000m (3,300ft) as High
Grown (HG). While there is some correlation between altitude and quality, it is most
common to see less traceable lots marketed this way, though more traceable coffees often
carry the initials, too.
Many Honduran farmers grow beans of Bourbon, Caturra, Typica and Catuai varieties but leaf rust
across all regions has recently devastated crops.
TASTE PROFILE
A range of different flavours are found in Honduran coffees, but the best often have a
complex fruity quality, and a lively, juicy acidity.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 8,250,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2013: 5,934,000
Although it is not described by IHCAFE as a coffee-growing region, many roasters label coffee as
being from the Santa Barbara region of Honduras. Several coffee regions cross into the Santa
Barbara department (a governmental division of the country). Some would argue that it requires
its own description, but it seemed more appropriate to stay within the official guidelines and use
the growing regions listed below. There are some excellent Pacas variety lots coming from the
Santa Barbara area. They have a distinctive and quite intense fruity quality when well produced,
and are definitely worth seeking out.
COPÁN
Copán is a department in the west of Honduras, named after the city of Copán, famous for its
Mayan ruins. The region borders Guatemala, and areas like this remind me of the importance of
focusing on exactly where a coffee is from rather than simply its country of origin. Geopolitical
borders can be somewhat arbitrary, and consumer expectations of a coffee from Honduras and
one from Guatemala are (unfortunately) quite a long way apart. Contained within Copán is the
northern part of the Santa Barbara coffee region.
Altitude: 1,000–1,500m (3,300–4,900ft)
Harvest: November–March
Varieties: Bourbon, Caturra, Catuai
MONTECILLOS
This region contains within it several sub-regions of note. The most notable are Marcala, now a
protected name, and La Paz. Marcala is a municipality inside the department of La Paz. Roasters
are more likely to use these names in order to be more accurate, instead of marking their coffee
with the wider region name of Montecillos.
Altitude: 1,200–1,600m (3,900–5,200ft)
Harvest: December–April
Varieties: Bourbon, Caturra, Catuai, Pacas
AGALTA
This region stretches right across the north of Honduras. Much of it is protected forest, so
ecotourism plays a significant role in the local economy.
Altitude: 1,000–1,400m (3,300–4,600ft)
Harvest: December–March
Varieties: Bourbon, Caturra, Typica
OPALACA
Opalaca contains within it the southern part of the coffee-producing areas of Santa Barbara, as
well as Intibucá and Lempira. It is named after the Opalaca mountain range, which stretches
through the region.
Altitude: 1,100–1,500m (3,600–4,900ft)
Harvest: November–February
Varieties: Bourbon, Catuai, Typica
COMAYAGUA
This region, in western central Honduras, is dense with tropical rainforest. The city of Comayagua
in the region was once the capital city of Honduras.
Altitude: 1,100–1,500m (3,600–4,900ft)
Harvest: December–March
Varieties: Bourbon, Caturra, Typica
EL PARAISO
This is one of the oldest and also the largest growing region in Honduras, in the east of the
country near the border with Nicaragua. Recently the region has suffered badly with coffee leaf
rust.
Altitude: 1,000–1,400m (3,300–4,600ft)
Harvest: December–March
Varieties: Catuai, Caturra
T
JAMAICA
The story of coffee on the island begins in 1728, when the Governor, Sir Nicholas Lawes,
received a coffee plant from the Governor of Martinique. Lawes had already experimented with
several crops, and he planted the coffee in the St Andrew area. Initially its production was
relatively limited; in 1752 Jamaica exported only 27 tonnes (30 tons) of coffee.
he real boom started in the second half of the 18th century, with coffee
spreading from the St Andrew area up to the Blue Mountains. In 1800,
686 coffee plantations were in operation, and by 1814 Jamaica’s annual
production was around 15,000 tonnes (16,500 tons) (although some
estimates are considerably higher).
After this boom, the industry started to see a slow decline. The primary
reason was probably the lack of labour, although other factors also played a
role. The slave trade had been abolished in 1807, but the emancipation of
slaves on the island did not happen until 1838. While there had been some
efforts to recruit formers slaves as private labourers, coffee struggled to
compete with other industries. And when combined with both poor soil
management and the loss of the favourable trade conditions that Britain had
previously extended its colonies, it resulted in a steep decline for coffee. By
1850 there were only around 180 plantations left, and production had
dropped to 1,500 tonnes (1,650 tons).
At the end of the 19th century, Jamaica was producing around 4,500
tonnes (5,000 tons) of coffee but serious issues with quality were starting to
appear. In 1891, legislation had been passed to try to spread knowledge about
coffee production in an effort to increase quality, and infrastructure was put
in place for the centralized processing and grading of coffee. This programme
had limited success, although a Central Coffee Clearing House was
constructed in 1944 for all coffee to pass through before export, and in 1950
the Jamaican Coffee Board was formed.
From this point onwards coffees from the Blue Mountain region made
slow and steady gains in reputation until they came to be considered among
finest coffees in the world. At that time, however, few well-processed coffees
were available and today Jamaica’s coffees cannot really compete against the
very best coffees from Central and South America, or East Africa. Jamaican
coffees tend to be clean, sweet and very mild. They lack the complexity or
distinct characteristics that one may expect from speciality grade coffees.
However, they were consistently producing, and cleverly marketing, clean
and sweet coffees long before other producers were, and this gave their
coffees a distinct advantage for some time.
Since the early 20th century, Jamaican coffee has become known for its clean, sweet and mild
flavours.
The provenance of Blue Mountain coffee is tightly controlled, based on the altitude of crops.
Distinctive wooden barrels further emphasize the brand.
TASTE PROFILE
Clean, sweet coffees though rarely complex or juicy and fruity.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 2,950,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2013: 27,000
There is really only one growing region of note in Jamaica, and it is probably one of the most
famous growing regions in the world.
BLUE MOUNTAIN
The subject of one of the most successful pieces of marketing in coffee’s history, this particular
region of Jamaica is clearly defined and well protected. Only coffees grown between 900 and
1,500m (3,000 and 4,900ft) in the parishes of Saint Andrew, Saint Thomas, Portland and Saint Mary
can be referred to as ‘Jamaica Blue Mountain’. Coffees grown between 450 and 900m (1,500 and
3,000ft) can be called ‘Jamaica High Mountain’, and anything below this may be called ‘Jamaica
Supreme’ or ‘Jamaica Low Mountain’.
The traceability of Blue Mountain coffees can be somewhat confusing, as most of the coffees are
sold under the name of the mill in which they are processed. These mills may occasionally keep a
large estate’s coffee separate, but usually they buy from the myriad of smallholders who grow
coffee in the region.
For a long time, the majority of Jamaica’s Blue Mountain production was sold to Japan. It was
exported in small wooden barrels rather than in jute bags. Also worth noting is that, due to its
ability to achieve very high prices, there is usually a fair amount of coffee fraudulently mislabelled
as Blue Mountain on the market.
Altitude: 900–1,500m (3,000–4,900ft)
Harvest: June–July
Varieties: Jamaica Blue Mountain (a Typica derivative), Typica
O
MEXICO
The first coffee plants were probably brought to Mexico around 1785, most likely from Cuba or
what is now the Dominican Republic. There are reports of plantations in the region of Veracruz
in 1790. However, due to the wealth earned from Mexico’s rich mineral deposits, for many years
there was little drive behind energizing and creating a coffee industry.
nly after the Mexican revolution ended in 1920 did coffee growing spread
to small farms. In 1914 there had been a redistribution of land back to
indigenous people and to labourers and many of those trapped working
on coffee plantations were freed and were able to return to their
communities, taking their coffee-growing skills with them. This
redistribution of land broke up many of the larger haciendas, and this was the
beginning of smallholder production in Mexico.
In 1973 the government formed the Mexican Coffee Institute (Instituto
Mexicano del Café) referred to as INMECAFE. They were tasked with
providing technical assistance and financial credit to producers, and work
within the International Coffee Agreement to meet and stay within the
agreed production quotas. This investment in the industry lead to a rapid
expansion in both production and the amount of land dedicated to coffee. In
some rural areas, production increased by almost nine hundred per cent.
However, the 1980s saw the Mexican government change its policy
towards coffee, in part due to its heavy borrowing and the drop in the price of
oil that lead to it defaulting on its loans. Support of the industry slowly began
to decline and, in 1989, INMECAFE collapsed completely and the
government sold off its state-owned coffee processing facilities. The effect on
the industry was devastating. Credit had dried up, and many farmers
struggled to find places to sell their coffee. This lead to an increase in
predatory coffee brokers, known as coyotes, who would buy coffee from
farmers very cheaply to resell at a profit.
The loss of INMECAFE, combined with the coffee price crisis caused by
the breakdown of the 1989 International Coffee Agreement, had a strong
effect on the quality of coffee being produced, too. With less income, huge
numbers of producers ceased using fertilizers, stopped investing in pest
protection and spent less time and resources on weeding and farm
management. In some cases farmers simply stopped harvesting their coffee.
Interestingly, some producers (particularly in the states of Oaxaca,
Chiapas and Veracruz) responded by forming collectives to take over many of
the responsibilities previously held by INMECAFE, including the collective
purchasing and running of coffee mills, technical assistance, political
lobbying and even assistance in developing direct relationships with buyers.
Coffee producers in Mexico seem to have embraced coffee certifications;
Fair Trade and organic in particular are quite common. Mexico sells a great
deal of its coffee to the United States, so it is relatively rare to find excellent
examples of Mexican coffee elsewhere in the world.
Since the late 1980s, many Mexican coffee producers have successfully formed collectives to
purchase and run coffee plantations. Fair Trade and organic exports are increasingly common.
TRACEABILITY
Most coffee in Mexico is produced by smallholders, rather than large estates.
Traceability should be possible down to a producer group, cooperative or
occasionally down to a farm.
TASTE PROFILE
Mexico produces quite a range of coffees across its regions, from lighter-bodied, delicate
coffees through to sweeter coffees with caramel, toffee or chocolate flavours in the cup.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 119,531,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 3,100,000
Coffee is also grown outside of the key growing regions listed below, and should not be ignored
if offered by a roaster or retailer you trust. Production from these regions is very small compared
to the major areas.
CHIAPAS
This region borders Guatemala. The Sierra Madre mountain range offers both the necessary
altitude, as well as the beneficial volcanic soils, for good coffee production.
Altitude: 1,000–1,750m (3,300–5,750ft)
Harvest: November–March
Varieties: Bourbon, Typica, Caturra, Maragogype
OAXACA
Most farmers in this region own less than 2 hectares (4.4 acres) of land and there are several large
cooperatives operating here. There are also a few larger estates, although some are starting to
diversify into tourism.
Altitude: 900–1,700m (3,000–5,600ft)
Harvest: December–March
Varieties: Bourbon, Typica, Caturra, Maragogype
VERACRUZ
This is a large state in the east of the country along the coast of the Gulf of Mexico. This area
contains some of the lowest coffee production in Mexico, but also some very high-altitude
plantations around Coatepec, that produce better coffee.
Altitude: 800–1,700m (2,600–5,600ft)
Harvest: December–March
Varieties: Bourbon, Typica, Caturra, Maragogype
A farmer turns over the coffee beans he has spread out to dry on his porch on a small cooperative
near Tapachula, Mexico.
T
NICARAGUA
Coffee was first brought to Nicaragua by Catholic Missionaries in 1790 and initially it was grown
as something of a curiosity. It was not until around 1840 that it gained economic significance in
response to an increasing global demand for coffee. The first commercial plantations appeared
around Managua.
he hundred-year period between 1840 and 1940 is often referred to as the
‘Coffee Boom’ years in Nicaragua, and during this time coffee had a
dramatic effect on the economy. As coffee gained importance and value, so
it required the input of more and more resources and labour. By 1870, coffee
was Nicaragua’s principal export crop and the government strove to make it
easier for foreign companies to invest in the industry and to acquire land.
Previously public land was sold to private individuals, and the government
encouraged the creation of large farms with the Subsidy Laws passed in 1879
and 1889, which paid planters $0.05 for every tree they planted over five
thousand trees.
By the end of the 19th century, Nicaragua came to resemble something of
a banana republic, with most of the profit from coffee either leaving the
country or going to a small number of local landowners.
The first growers’ cooperative was formed in the early 20th century, and
the idea of cooperatives was promoted again from time to time during the
Somoza family dictatorship between 1936 and 1979. However, the overthrow
of the Somoza family by the Sandinistas, and the ushering in of communism
in 1979 was the beginning of a difficult time for coffee industry. The Contras,
rebel groups backed by the US and the CIA, formed to oppose the new
government, targeted the coffee industry as part of their campaign, attacking
vehicles transporting coffee farm workers, as well as sabotaging coffee mills.
Despite these setbacks, in 1992 coffee was still Nicaragua’s primary
export. However, the crash in coffee prices between 1999 and 2003 massively
damaged the coffee sector again. Three of the largest six banks in the country
collapsed due to their level of exposure to coffee production. The effect of low
prices was perhaps multiplied further after the devastation of Hurricane
Mitch in 1998, and the drought at the turn of the millennium.
Things are now, however, looking up for Nicaraguan coffee and more
farmers are focusing on quality. In the past, the traceability of coffee was
poor, and most was sold as a mill brand or as being from a particular region.
Now the levels of traceability are very high.
Coffee is one of Nicaragua’s most important exports and the trade has survived political upheaval
and natural disasters.
TRACEABILITY
You should be able to find coffees traceable down to single estates, or to
producer groups or cooperatives.
TASTE PROFILE
A range of flavours are found in Nicaraguan coffees. They are typically quite complex and
capable of pleasing fruit-like flavours and clean acidity.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 6,071,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2013: 1,500,000
Nicaragua has a number of smaller growing regions, including Madriz, Managua, Boaca and
Carazo, which are not listed below but that do produce some excellent coffees.
JINOTEGA
The name of the region, and its capital city, is derived from the Nahuatl word xinotencatl, but
there is disagreement as to what this actually means. It is either ‘city of old men’ or ‘neighbours of
the Jiñocuabos’, the latter probably being the accurate one. The region’s economy has long been
dependent on coffee, and it is still the primary producing region in Nicaragua.
Altitude: 1,100–1,700m (3,600–5,600ft)
Harvest: December–March
Varieties: Caturra, Bourbon
MATAGALPA
Another region named after its capital city, a city with a museum dedicated to coffee. Coffee from
this region is produced by a mixture of estates and cooperatives.
Altitude: 1,000–1,400m (3,300–4,600ft)
Harvest: December–February
Varieties: Caturra, Bourbon
NUEVA SEGOVIA
This region is on Nicaragua’s northern border, and in recent years it has begun to distinguish itself
for producing some of the very best coffees in the country, with a great deal of success in the
country’s Cup of Excellence competition.
Altitude: 1,100–1,650m (3,600–5,400ft)
Harvest: December–March
Varieties: Caturra, Bourbon
P
PANAMA
Coffee plants probably arrived in Panama with the first European settlers in the early 19th
century. In the past, Panama did not have a very good reputation for its coffees, and its
production was about one-tenth of that of its neighbour Costa Rica, but now there is increasing
interest from the speciality coffee community in the high-quality coffees it can produce.
anama’s geography is such that there are a number of distinct
microclimates in its coffee-growing regions, and there are some
incredibly skilled and dedicated producers currently growing coffee. This
means that there are some stellar coffees being produced, though these often
come with relatively high asking prices.
These high prices are partly determined by the other major factor
influencing the industry there: real estate. There is a high demand for land
from North Americans wishing to buy a home in a stable, beautiful and
relatively cheap country. Many farms that once produced coffee have now
been sold as homes for ex-pats. Panama also has a higher standard of labour
laws, so coffee pickers tend to be paid a higher wage here, a cost that is passed
on to the consumer.
HACIENDA LA ESMERALDA
When it comes to discussing the price of coffee, one particular farm in
Panama merits a mention and it is hard to think of another single estate that
has had such a strong influence on the coffee industry in Central America.
That farm is Hacienda La Esmeralda, owned and operated by the Peterson
family.
At a time when the commodity price of coffee was relatively low, the
Specialty Coffee Association of Panama organized a competition called the
Best of Panama: the best lots of coffee from different farms in Panama were
ranked and then put up for an online auction. Hacienda La Esmeralda had
been growing a distinct variety called Geisha for some years, but this
competition brought their coffee to a wider audience. They won the
competition for four successive years from 2004 to 2007, and then again in
2009, 2010 and a category of the 2013 competition. From the outset this
coffee broke records when it achieved a price of $21/lb in 2004, which
incrementally crept up to $170/lb in 2010. A small lot of its naturally
processed coffee sold for $350.25/lb in 2013, leaving no one in doubt that this
was the most expensive single-estate coffee in the world.
Unlike some other very high-priced coffees (such as the appalling noveltydriven
Kopi Luwak, or some of the Jamaica Blue Mountain coffees), this
farm achieved its prices due to the genuinely high quality of its coffee,
although high demand and great marketing undoubtedly played a role. This
record-breaking coffee tastes quite unusual: extremely floral and citrusy
though quite light and tea-like in body. These characteristics are attributed to
the Geisha variety.
The impact of this farm can be seen in the number of farms in Panama,
and in Central America, who have started planting Geisha. For many
producers this variety seemed like a promise of higher prices, and to some
extent this has proven to be true, as Geisha lots are usually sold for higher
prices than other varieties.
The distinctive Geisha variety is commonly associated with crops from Panama. Its floral, citrusy
flavour and efforts by local farmers to maintain high quality has created a growing demand.
TRACEABILITY
One should expect high levels of traceability from Panama. Coffees are often
traceable down to a single estate and it is not unusual to see distinct lots from
one particular estate, such as a coffee produced by a distinctive post-harvest
process or one from a specific variety of the coffee plant.
A plantation in Volcan is one of many in this region producing stunning coffees.
TASTE PROFILE
The better coffees tend to be citrusy and floral, light bodied, delicate and complex.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 4,058,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2013: 115,000
Panama’s regions have been defined more by how coffee has been sold than by geography.
Previously, when coffee was more widespread, the regions listed below could have been grouped
as one entity, as they are small and closely clustered together.
BOQUETE
This is the best-known of Panama’s producing regions. Its mountainous topography produces
various distinct microclimates. The fairly cool weather and frequent mists help slow the maturation
of the coffee cherries and some argue this mimics the effects of higher altitude.
Altitude: 400–1,900m (1,300–6,200ft)
Harvest: December–March
Varieties: Typica, Caturra, Catuai, Bourbon, Geisha, San Ramon
VOLCAN-CANDELA
This region produces much of Panama’s food, and some stunning coffees. Named after the
Volcan Baru volcano and Piedra Candela city, the region borders Costa Rica.
Altitude: 1,200–1,600m (3,900–5,200ft)
Harvest: December–March
Varieties: Typica, Caturra, Catuai, Bourbon, Geisha, San Ramon
RENACIMIENTO
Another district within the Chiriquí province, on the border with Costa Rica. The district itself is
relatively small, so it is not a primary producer of Panama’s speciality coffees.
Altitude: 1,100–1,500m (3,600–4,900ft)
Harvest: December–March
Varieties: Typica, Caturra, Catuai, Bourbon, Geisha, San Ramon
I
PERU
Coffee was first brought to Peru between 1740 and 1760, at a time when the Viceroyalty of Peru
covered a larger area than the country does today. Although the climate was well suited to
large-scale coffee production, all coffee grown in the first hundred years or so was consumed
locally. The first exports of coffee, to Germany and England, did not begin until 1887.
n the 1900s, the Peruvian government defaulted on a loan from the British
government and ended up giving them two million hectares (five million
acres) of land in Central Peru as repayment. One-quarter of this land was
turned over to plantations, growing crops, which included coffee. Migrant
workers from the highlands came to work on these farms and some ended up
owning some land themselves. Others would later buy land from the British
when they left Peru.
Unfortunately for the coffee industry, Juan Velasco’s government brought
in laws in the 1970s that would cripple growth. The International Coffee
Agreement had guaranteed sales and prices, so there had been little incentive
to create proper infrastructure. When state support was withdrawn, the
coffee industry sunk into disarray. The quality of the coffee and Peru’s
market position further suffered at the hands of the communist party, The
Shining Path, whose guerrilla activity destroyed crops and drove farmers
from their land.
The vacuum left in Peru’s coffee industry has recently been filled by nongovernment
organizations such as Fair Trade, and now a large quantity of
coffee from Peru is FT certified. More and more land is also being devoted to
coffee: in 1980 there were 62,000 hectares (154,000 acres), today there are
95,00 hectares (235,000 acres). Peru is now one of the largest producers of
coffee in the world.
The infrastructure within Peru still stands in the way of the country
producing extremely high-quality lots. Few mills are situated close to farms,
which means that the coffee is often travelling longer than is desirable after
harvest before processing starts. Some coffees end up being bought and
blended with other coffees, then resold en route to the coast for export.
Interestingly, around one-quarter of the hundred thousand small producers
in the country are now members of cooperatives, although it is important to
remember that Fair Trade certification can only apply to coffee produced by
a cooperative. There is also a strong culture of organic production in Peru,
though this rarely yields higher cup quality. In fact, the organic coffees
produced in Peru are often so cheap that they end up bringing down prices
paid to other farmers, regardless of them producing higher-quality coffee.
Perhaps because of this, and also because of the widespread cultivation of
the Typica variety, leaf rust is increasingly a problem for Peruvian producers.
While the 2013 crop was good, there have been severe outbreaks of leaf rust,
which may well reduce overall production in the near future.
TRACEABILITY
The best coffees should be traceable down to a producer group or down to a
single estate.
TASTE PROFILE
Typically Peruvian coffees have been clean, but a little soft and flat. They are sweet and
relatively heavy bodied but not very complex. Increasingly there are distinctive and juicier
coffees becoming available.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 31,152,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 3,800,000
Some coffee is grown outside of the main regions listed below, but not in the same quantities and
without the same level of recognition. Some might argue that Peru is well placed to deal with the
increased temperatures that may come with climate change, as it has plenty of land at higher
altitudes that may become suitable for growing coffee in the future.
CAJAMARCA
Cajamarca is a state in the north of the country named for its capital city, and covers the northern
end of the Peruvian Andes. The region benefits from an equatorial climate and soils suitable for
coffee. Most producers in the region are smallholders, although they are often well organized and
belong to producers’ organizations, which supply technical help, training, loans, community
development and other support. One of these organizations in the region, CENFROCAFE, works
with 1,900 families to promote coffee roasting and runs a local café to help the farmers diversify.
Altitude: 900–2,050m (3,000–6,750ft)
Harvest: March–September
Varieties: Bourbon, Typica, Caturra, Pache, Mondo Novo, Catuai, Catimor
JUNIN
This region produces 20–25 per cent of Peru’s coffee and here the coffee grows in amongst the
rainforest. The area did suffer in the 1980s and 1990s as a result of guerrilla activity, and the
neglect of the trees during this period allowed plant diseases to spread. The coffee industry had
to be restarted from almost nothing in the late 1990s.
Altitude: 1,400–1,900m (4,600–6,200ft)
Harvest: March–September
Varieties: Bourbon, Typica, Caturra, Pache, Mondo Novo, Catuai, Catimor
CUSCO
Cusco is a region in the south of the country where coffee, in some ways, is the legal alternative to
the other popular crop in this area: coca. Most of the coffee is grown by smallholders, rather than
larger estates. The area thrives on tourism, and many visitors travel through the city of Cusco on
their way to see Machu Picchu.
Altitude: 1,200–1,900m (3,900–6,200ft)
Harvest: March–September
Varieties: Bourbon, Typica, Caturra, Pache, Mondo Novo, Catuai, Catimor
SAN MARTIN
This region is on the eastern side of the Andes, and many farmers produce coffee on plots 5–10
hectares (10–24 acres) in size. In the past this was the main area of coca production in Peru,
although cooperatives in the region now promote the idea of diversification by growing other
crops alongside coffee, such as cacao and honey. In recent years the level of poverty in the region
has dropped dramatically, from 70 per cent down to 31 per cent of the population.
Altitude: 1,100–2,000m (3,600–6,600ft)
Harvest: March–September
Varieties: Bourbon, Typica, Caturra, Pache, Mondo Novo, Catuai, Catimor
Peru’s limited infrastructure stands in the way of the country producing coffee of outstanding
quality. The delivery and processing of fresh harvests are often delayed and few mills are located
near plantations.
F
VENEZUELA
The introduction of coffee to Venezuela is generally credited to a Jesuit priest named José
Gumilla in around 1730. Venezuela came to be known for its plantations of tobacco and cacao
run on slave labour, and from around 1793 there is evidence of large coffee plantations too.
rom around 1800, coffee took an increasingly important role in the
economy. During the Venezuelan War of Independence, from 1811 to
1823, cacao production began to drop but coffee production surged. The
first boom in the country’s coffee industry took place between 1830 and 1855,
when Venezuela produced around one-third of the world’s coffee. Coffee
continued to grow in production, peaking in 1919 with a total export of 1.37
million bags. Together, coffee and cacao accounted for 75 per cent of the
country’s entire export revenue. Most of the coffee went to the United States.
In the 1920s, Venezuela’s economy became increasingly dependent on
petroleum, although coffee remained a good source of revenue. Much of the
revenue was spent on national infrastructure, until the prices dropped in the
1930s and the production and processing infrastructure suffered as a
consequence. This period also saw a shift towards privatization in the coffee
industry, stripping peasants of much of their power to grow their own coffee
on public land.
Since this period, the nation has been fundamentally dependent on
petroleum products and other mineral exports. Coffee production and
exports had remained relatively high, with Venezuela nearly matching the
production of Colombia, but that changed under the government of Hugo
Chávez. In 2003, the government introduced strict regulations on coffee
production, which meant the country increasingly had to rely on imports for
domestic consumption, mostly from Nicaragua and Brazil. Venezuela
exported 479,000 bags of coffee in 1992/1993 and this dropped again to
19,000 in 2009/2010. Government-fixed sales prices have been considerably
below the cost of production, which has inevitably damaged the industry.
Few can predict how the situation will change in the wake of Chávez’s death.
Though Venezuelan coffee production was strong in the early-20th century, crops are increasingly
rare and have suffered from political resistance and poor remuneration for farmers.
TRACEABILITY
As so little coffee is exported from the country, coming across Venezuelan
coffees of quality is rare. While some should be traceable down to single
estates, it is more common to see coffees described by their region names.
Generally speaking, the low altitude and lack of focus on cup quality means I
would recommend trying Venezuelan coffees only if they are being provided
by a roaster whose coffees you generally enjoy and who you trust.
TASTE PROFILE
The better coffees from Venezuela are quite sweet, a little low in acidity and relatively rich in
terms of mouthfeel and texture.
GROWING REGIONS
Population: 31,775,000
Number of 60kg (132lb) bags in 2016: 400,000
Coffees from Venezuela are currently quite rare. There are hopes that this may change in the
future but it seems unlikely in the short term.
WESTERN REGION
This region produces a large percentage of the country’s coffee. It is easier to find export grades
marked with the name of the state in which they were produced, such as Táchira, Mérida or Zulia,
rather than the region. Some people make comparisons between coffees from this region and
those from neighbouring Colombia.
Altitude: 1,000–1,200m (3,300–3,900ft)
Harvest: September–March
Varieties: Typica, Bourbon, Mundo Novo, Caturra
WEST CENTRAL REGION
This region contains the states of Portuguesa and Lara, some of the primary coffee-producing
regions in the country, as well as Falcón and Yaracuy. The best coffees are considered to come
from this region, relatively close to the Colombian border. These coffees are commonly referred
to as Maracaibos, named for the port from which they are exported.
Altitude: 1,000–1,200m (3,300–3,900ft)
Harvest: September–March
Varieties: Typica, Bourbon, Mundo Novo, Caturra
NORTH CENTRAL REGION
A small amount of Venezuela’s production comes from the states of Aragua, Carabobo, the
Federal Dependencies, Miranda, Cojedes and Guárico in this region.
Altitude: 1,000–1,200m (3,300–3,900ft)
Harvest: September–March
Varieties: Typica, Bourbon, Mundo Novo, Caturra
EASTERN REGION
This region is home to the states of Sucre, Monagas, Anzoátegui and Bolívar. It is sometimes
possible to find a type of coffee called Caracas produced in this region.
Altitude: 1,000–1,200m (3,300–3,900ft)
Harvest: September–March
Varieties: Typica, Bourbon, Mundo Novo, Caturra
GLOSSARY
ARABICA Short for coffea arabica, the most widely grown species of the coffee plant. It is considered
superior to robusta, the other species commonly grown.
AROMATIC COMPOUND A chemical compound within coffee that contributes to the aroma of the
coffee when ground or brewed.
BLOOM Pouring a small amount of water on to the coffee at the start of a pour-over brew in order to
start the extraction process is called the ‘bloom’ because of the way the coffee swells when it gets wet.
BREW RATIO The relationship between the amount of ground coffee used and the amount of water
used to brew it.
BREW TIME The total amount of time water is in contact with coffee when it is being brewed.
BURR GRINDER A coffee grinder that has two sharp cutting discs, usually metal, that can be adjusted
to grind coffee to the desired grind size.
C-PRICE The price of commodity coffee traded on the stock market. This price is considered the base
price for coffee trading.
CHERRY The fruit of the coffee tree is often called a cherry, or berry. The two seeds inside the cherry
are the coffee beans.
COFFEE BERRY BORER A pest that afflicts the coffee crop, burrowing into the fruit and consuming
the beans inside.
COMMODITY COFFEE Coffee that has no value linked to its quality, and whose traceability is neither
important nor often available.
COOPERATIVE A group of farmers working together for their mutual benefit.
CREMA The layer of brown foam that appears on top of an espresso, caused by the drink being brewed
under high pressure.
CUP OF EXCELLENCE COMPETITION A programme established to find, evaluate and rank finequality
coffee from a particular country, and then sell the winning coffees through an international
online auction system.
CUP QUALITY The combination of the positive taste and flavour attributes of a particular coffee.
CUPPING The process of brewing, smelling and tasting coffee used by professional tasters in the coffee
industry.
DARK ROAST Coffee roasted for a longer time, until the bean is a very dark brown, with an oily
surface.
DEFECT A flaw in the coffee bean that contributes an unpleasant taste.
DIALLING IN The process of adjusting an espresso grinder until the resulting coffee tastes good and is
properly extracted.
DRY MILL A facility that will hull, sort and grade parchment coffee, ready for export.
DRY PROCESS A post-harvest process in which the whole coffee cherry is dried before being hulled to
extract the green coffee inside.
EXTRACTION The process of brewing coffee in which a percentage of the ground coffee is dissolved in
the water.
FAIR TRADE MOVEMENT A group of organizations looking to certify and reward cooperatives of
coffee producers, with a guaranteed premium and minimum price for their coffee.
FAST ROAST The commercial technique of roasting coffee very quickly, often in less than five
minutes, as part of the process of making instant/soluble coffee.
FULLY WASHED A post-harvest process in which the coffee beans are squeezed from the fruit,
fermented and washed clean before being dried.
GILING BASAH A post-harvest process common in Indonesia, in which the coffee is hulled from its
parchment layer while still at high moisture levels and then dried. This contributes a particular earthy
quality to the coffee’s flavour. See also semi-washed process.
GREEN COFFEE The coffee industry term for raw, unfrosted coffee. This is the state in which coffee is
traded internationally.
GRIND SIZE The size of the particles of ground coffee. The finer and smaller the pieces, the easier it is
to extract flavour from the coffee.
HEIRLOOM VARIETIES A term used for varieties of coffee that have been traditionally grown for some
time.
HONEY PROCESS A post-harvest process, similar to the pulped natural process, in which the coffee
bean is squeezed from the fruit but a variable amount of fruit flesh is left on during the drying phase.
IN REPOSO Also known as ‘resting’, this describes the period of time when raw coffee is stored in
parchment before it is hulled, graded and exported. This process is considered important in stabilizing
the moisture content within the bean.
INTERNATIONAL COFFEE AGREEMENT First signed in 1962, this is a quota system in place
between many coffee-producing countries and some importing countries in order to prevent supply
and demand swings on the global market and stabilize pricing.
LATTE ART The patterns created by carefully pouring foamed milk into espresso coffee.
LEAF RUST An orange/brown fungus that attacks the leaves on a coffee tree, eventually causing the
tree to die.
LIGHT ROAST A coffee roasted in such a way as to preserve its acidity and fruitier flavours. The term
refers to the coffee bean being a lighter shade of brown.
LOT A distinct quantity of coffee, which has gone through some sort of selection process.
MICROFOAM The tiny bubbles of foam created when milk is steamed properly.
MICRO-LOT Typically ten bags (each weighing 60 or 69kg/132 or 152lb) or fewer of a particular
selection from a farm or producer group.
MIEL PROCESS see honey process
MONSOONING Along India’s Malabar Coast, harvested coffee beans are exposed to the monsoon
rain for three or four months, causing them to lose their acidity.
MOUTHFEEL A term used to describe the texture and tactile attributes of the coffee when drinking it,
ranging from very light and tea-like through to rich and creamy.
NATURAL PROCESS A post-harvest process in which the coffee beans are picked and then carefully
dried in the sun until the entire cherry is dry.
OVEREXTRACTION This refers to extracting more of the soluble material than desired when brewing
coffee, resulting in the cup that tastes bitter, harsh and unpleasant.
PARCHMENT The protective papery layer surrounding the coffee bean, which is removed before the
coffee is exported.
PARCHMENT COFFEE Coffee that has been harvested and processed, but still has its papery layer
surrounding the bean. This protective layer prevents a decrease in quality before the coffee is exported.
PEABERRY Term used to describe a single bean forming inside a coffee cherry instead of two.
POTATO DEFECT A defect common in parts of East Africa, as a result of which a single bean will smell
strongly of potato skins when ground and brewed.
PULPED NATURAL PROCESS A post-harvest process in which the coffee beans are squeezed
mechanically from the fruit before being dried on patios or raised beds.
RATIO (BREW), see Brew ratio
ROBUSTA One of the two main commercially produced species of coffee, robusta is considered lower
in quality than arabica, but is easier to grow at lower altitudes and more resistant to pests and disease.
RUST-RESISTANT VARIETIES Varieties of arabica and robusta that are resistant to a fungus called leaf
rust or roya, which consumes the leaves on the tree, ultimately killing the plant.
SCREEN SIZE Coffee beans are sorted by size using large screens with varying size holes in them. This
is part of the grading process before a coffee is exported.
SEMI-WASHED PROCESS see pulped natural process
SILVERSKIN A very fine, papery layer that clings to the coffee bean. It comes loose during roasting, and
is then referred to as ‘chaff’.
SLOW ROAST A slower, gentler roasting process, typically used by those looking to roast a coffee in
such a way that it tastes as good as possible. Depending on the roasting machine and technique, the
process can take between 10 and 20 minutes per roast.
SMALLHOLDER A producer who owns a small amount of land on which to grow coffee.
SPECIALITY MARKET The market for coffee traded on the basis of its quality and flavour. This term
covers every aspect of the industry, including producers, exporters/importers, roasters, cafés and
consumers.
STRENGTH OF COFFEE A term to describe how much dissolved coffee a cup of coffee contains:
typically a cup of brewed coffee is 1.3–1.5 per cent dissolved coffee and the rest is water. With espresso,
the ratio may be closer to 8–12 per cent dissolved coffee.
STRIP PICKING A harvesting technique that involves pickers running their hands down a branch to
remove all the cherries in one motion. While quick, this technique means unripe cherries are harvested
along with ripe ones, and the cherries will need to be sorted later in the process.
TAMPING When making espresso, this is the process of pushing the ground coffee down so that it
forms an even, flat bed before it is brewed under very high pressure. This helps ensure the coffee brews
evenly.
TERROIR The combined effect of geography and climate on the way a coffee tastes.
TRACEABILITY The transparency of the supply chain in coffee, and its preservation, so one can know
exactly who produced a particular lot of coffee.
TYPICA The oldest variety of arabica that has been used in commercial coffee production.
UNDEREXTRACTION In the process of brewing coffee this happens when we fail to dissolve all of the
desired solubles in ground coffee leaving us with a sour, often astringent cup of coffee.
WASHED PROCESS A post harvest process where the coffee cherries are squeezed, forcing the beans
out. These beans are then fermented to break down the sticky fruit flesh that is clinging to them. This is
then washed off and the coffee is then dried carefully and slowly.
WASHING STATION A facility that receives coffee cherries, and processes them until they are dry,
parchment coffee using a variety of post harvest processes.
WET PROCESS see washed process
WET-HULLED PROCESS see semi-washed process
WET MILL see washing station
PICTURE ACKNOWLEDGEMENTS
Alamy Stock Photo Chronicle 1; F. Jack Jackson 1; Gillian Lloyd 1; hemis/Franck Guiziou 1; Image
Source 1; imageBROKER/Michael Runkel 1; Jan Butchofsky 1; Jon Bower Philippines 1; Joshua Roper
1; Len Collection 1; mediacolor’s 1; Phil Borges/Danita Delimont 1; Philip Scalia 1; Stefano Paterna 1;
Vespasian 1; WorldFoto 1.
Blacksmith Coffee Roastery/www.BlacksmithCoffee.com 1.
Corbis Arne Hodalic 1; Bettmann 1; David Evans/National Geographic Society 1, 2; Frederic
Soltan/Sygma 1; Gideon Mendel 1; Ian Cumming/Design Pics 1; Jack Kurtz/ZUMA Press 1; Jane
Sweeney/JAI 1; Janet Jarman 1; Juan Carlos Ulate/Reuters 1, 2, 3; KHAM/Reuters 1; Kicka
Witte/Design Pics 1; Michael Hanson/National Geographic Society 1; Mohamed Al-Sayaghi/Reuters 1;
Monty Rakusen/cultura 1; NOOR KHAMIS/Reuters 1; Pablo Corral V 1; Reuters/Henry Romero 1;
Rick D’Elia 1; Stringer/Mexico/Reuters 1; Swim Ink 1, LLC 1; Yuriko Nakao/Reuters 1.
Dreamstime.com Luriya Chinwan 1; Phanuphong Thepnin 1; Sasi Ponchaisang 1.
Enrico Maltoni 1, 2.
Getty Images Alex Dellow 1; B. Anthony Stewart/National Geographic 1; Bloomberg via Getty Images
1, 2; Brian Doben 1; Bruce Block 1; Dimas Ardian/Bloomberg via Getty Images 1; Frederic Coubet 1;
Gamma-Keystone via Getty Images 1; Glow Images, Inc. 1; Harrriet Bailey/EyeEm 1; Ian Sanderson 1;
Imagno 1; In Pictures Ltd./Corbis via Getty Images 1; Jane Sweeney 1; John Coletti 1; Jon Spaull 1;
Jonathan Torgovnik 1; Juan Carlos/Bloomberg via Getty Images 1, 2; Kelley Miller 1; Kurt Hutton 1;
Livia Corona 1; Luis Acosta/AFP 1; Mac99 1; MCT via Getty Images 1; Melissa Tse 1; Michael Boyny 1;
Michael Mahovlich 1, 2, 3; Mint Images 1; Mint Images RF 1; National Geographic/Sam Abell 1;
Philippe Bourseiller 1; Philippe Lissac/GODONG 1; Piti A Sahakorn/LightRocket via Getty Images 1;
Polly Thomas 1; Prashanth Vishwanathan/Bloomberg via Getty Images 1; Ryan Lane 1;
SambaPhoto/Ricardo de Vicq 1; SSPL via Getty Images 1; Stephen Shaver/Bloomberg via Getty Images
1; STR/AFP 1; TED ALJIBE/AFP 1; WIN-Initiative 1.
Gilberto Baraona 1.
James Hoffmann 1.
Lineair Fotoarchief Ron Giling 1.
Mary Evans Picture Library INTERFOTO/Bildarchiv Hansmann 1.
Nature Picture Library Gary John Norman 1.
Panos Sven Torfinn 1; Thierry Bresillon/Godong 1; Tim Dirven 1, 2.
REX Shutterstock Florian Kopp/imageBROKER 1; Imaginechina 1.
Robert Harding Picture Library Arjen Van De Merwe/Still Pictures 1.
Shutterstock Alfredo Maiquez 1; Anawat Sudchanham 1; Athirati 1; ntdanai 1; Stasis Photo 1; trappy76
1.
SuperStock imagebroker.net 1.
Sweet Maria’s 1.
Thinkstock iStock/OllieChanter 1; iStock/Paul Marshman 1.
AUTHOR’S ACKNOWLEDGEMENTS
Researchers: Ben Szobody, Michael Losada
Research assistance, translation and motivation: Alethea Rudd
I’d like to thank Ric Rhinehart and Peter Giuliano for their astonishing generosity of time and wisdom.
I’m extremely grateful to everyone in the Square Mile Coffee Roasters team, past and present, for being
constantly inspiring and supportive.
Dedicated to my family.
An Hachette UK Company
www.hachette.co.uk
First published in Great Britain in 2014 by Mitchell Beazley,
an imprint of Octopus Publishing Group Ltd
Carmelite House, 50 Victoria Embankment, London EC4Y 0DZ
www.octopusbooks.co.uk
Revised edition 2018
Text Copyright © James Hoffmann 2014, 2018
Copyright © Octopus Publishing Group Ltd 2014, 2018
Distributed in Canada by Canadian Manda Group,
664 Annette Street, Toronto, Ontario, Canada M6S 2C8
All rights reserved. No part of this work may be reproduced or utilized in any form or by any
means, electronic or mechanical, including photocopying, recording, or by any information
storage and retrieval system, without the prior written permission of the publishers.
The publishers will be grateful for any information that will assist them in keeping future editions
up to date. Although all reasonable care has been taken in the preparation of this book, neither
the publishers nor the author can accept any liability for any consequence arising from the use
thereof, or the information contained therein. Every effort has been made to trace copyright
holders and to obtain their permission for the use of copyright material. The publisher apologizes
for any errors or omissions and would be grateful if notified of any corrections that should be
incorporated in future editions of this book.
James Hoffmann asserts the moral right to be identified as the author of this work.
eISBN: 978-1-78472-571-6
Publisher Denise Bates
Senior Editor Alex Stetter
Copy Editor Joanna Smith
Art Director Juliette Norsworthy
Designers Lizzie Ballantyne, Penny Stock
Illustrator Grace Helmer
Cover Design & Illustration gray318
Special Photography Cristian Barnett
Picture Research Manager Giulia Hetherington
Picture Researcher Jennifer Veall
Senior Production Controller Allison Gonsalves
Cartography
Digital mapping by Encompass Graphics Ltd, Hove, UK www.encompass-graphics.co.uk